Journal— Monday, August 2, 1943 1. Talk with Quier on ^enver
Transcription
Journal— Monday, August 2, 1943 1. Talk with Quier on ^enver
Journal— 1. Monday, Talk with Quie r on ^ e n v e r J£ wante^do hear He met that Garter, s e g r e g a t i o n was t o be the that he only could Analyst fice, center. the loyal to to and not t h e Denver take place say to talk ing is the over said that ones going as dov,n to the Lake change- Jü f e l t Cpler, as come o t h e r the t o i s i b r e e and pointing loyal one the out ones thing segregation center segregation Province that the the people at segregation. all only that of h i s told had not or of for of sat in The ofQye his follow- getting Opler the rind center yijifl t a l k e d conference, lis s a i d if the that for been prepared instance, announced at Tule in problems preparing t h e new a d m i n i s t r a t i v e Hocial staff—,.ay an a s s e m b l y Dr. discussed one in h i s They h o d t o move o u t . two m o n t h s , s e g r e g a t i o n was disclosing center. I anzanar, only from Tule Lake had gone intention center. state- JS. evening before Coverley the conference. i n T u l e Lake had not progr-m for beyond s i n c e h e was. a t h e r e would be a l o t s e g r e g a t i o n by O o v e r l e y . for the considered i n Tule Lake had educational the that J S and Cpler Opler with but He f o u n d D p l e r s e g r e g a t i o n ÄT h e g r o u p conference o p e n e d up a s of out, t h e r e were t h e r e w o u l d "be a p u b l i c was results definite He a l s o w i t h two m e m b e r s summary of what Tule Lake having the was T u l e L a k e was and L i l y 1 afcaaura (now m a r r i e d ) . car it conference. that a administrator. conference 1943 and that intimately 2, results t o l d him t h a t che w h o l e p r o b l e m . talk in to for cared m e n t made o f he only segregation some c o n c e s s i o n s r e s u l t a of the and he conference August the to for h a d an people the staff Tashington conference the pfäff/fi?ffifflg* procedure at a staff Journal— meeting in Tule Lake. l i i gpatcha about been August saying that segregation. s e l e c t e d as known o f local In fact, nothing Embree f e l t the on residents in Tule Lake had not After tne conference Tule Lake s h o u l d not by Tule Lake would be yer/ was nave been t h e group from Tule Lake. very strongly, but program because set up. For Army f o r so much of instance, oi more for other reasons. military zone. Another the p r o j e c t . and cpmpact. the ton, undergone even the conditions center. the fact segregation was b r o u g h t in the the there take that center home segregation been h a d b e e n made w i t h r o u t e had been center when he l e f t a change in segregation t h e number of One was that i»as that it A third factor C o v e r l e y was segregation but the on Tule t h e p r o c e d u r e had a l r e a d y and had officials segregation point arrangements chosen as s o much b e c a u s e to local impressed with chosen have the deter- charted. T u l e L a k e was next segregation s e g r e g a t i o n would the This not he and o t h e r s of p r o d u c e d no c h a n g e transportation, mined and not it discussed the higher consulting that the Op'ler was a n g r y be- effect reached the morning layers announced that if 2 in s e t t i n g up p r o c e d u r e s . Lake had been chosen w i t h o u t p l a c e and center the p o s s i b l e they were too busy a notice Tule Lake might in Tule Lake. reports In that segregation conditions 1943 d e f i n i t e h a d "been cause his because he had put 2, at in favor camp, people it it s e "tried , involved, was but situated in a h a d a Array camp r i :ht was that it was large of Tule Lake b e i n g the director©1 meeting in chosen ashing- ////the / / # / / the p r o j e c t , he heart. statement t h e AP In h i s to had Journal— August h e h a dfijLitjL/ffiiLfi s y m p a t h i z e d w i t h segregated, effeot of Op'ier felt segregation oh n g i n g O o v e r l e y 1 a ¿cncesaions the delegates •loyal' that on his the first the choice tyfj^/fiflL that of people Another choice first of mude up outside It s e l i n g would be F a m i l i e s were t o go serve, t h e i r minds Procedures set in t h i s was to important staying rro^ram choice upon the to Japanese leaving had the the change their t o go referred from other i1ready coun- Department. In answers, were to be would The which given hearing. c e n t e r was that of to. One to be reason for they had a mere t h a n one o f mere the other centers to continue as b e f o r e . centers given family their duration. tine or a n o t h e r . segregation Tule Lake, o n e s who h a d repatriates this the c o - l e would have Welfare segregation p r o g r a m was for a s much a s p o s s i b l e . the people t o make a t i n one c e n t e r that others The the a s y s t e m of to The to leave for impress the resettlement believed be allowed fter changed, j o b s w o u l d "be centers together no m o r e r e p a t r i a t i o n . to leave the loyal the Social meant closed in w o u l d a l s o "be a m a t t e r that would n o t definitely It exjected to be kept perhaps that of up concessions Ml the choice was center f i l l e d by p e o p l e giving ones Resettlement segregation jobs. to. loyal a hearing, possible h a d "been e f f e c t i v e forced c o n c e s s i o n was canters come f i r s t on t h e 3 t o "be i n Tule Lake would be t o T u l e L a k e b e f o r e "being / ¿ i f / a reports the people to get o n e s who w e r e centers. t h e p e o p l e who h a d f r o m T u l e L a k e worked f o r c o n c e s s i o n was 1943 attitude, Failing one 2, serve because it to reduce was n o t It was objections known Journal— August whether they were that would be it years. to leave here (i^ote ment the of they gation. that probably sory, than to be although school. it large tached to extent it, by th t h e WRA. t h o s e who w a n t e d t o o k out r e p a t r i a t i o n paper for American p r i s o n e r s . remain that being in U.S. the after d e t e r m i n e d by segreg or favored segre- opposed to it. t o be center Japanese coaipul- be f i n a n c e d segregation although be sent exi e c t e d t h e war was the two so.) that back over. some o f in still 7/RA o f f i c i a l s disloyalty tion process. at- center. those exchange a sizable c e n t e r would if to t o b e no s t i g m a in a might was loyalty the would be p e r m i t t e d deportation, a segrgation i s s u e was n o t uj - c h i l d r e n woi i d go wouldn't remain who It t most it vKA p r o g r a m o f t h o s e who s t a y e ^ d n t o do would not b e T h e r e was to tied The s e g r e g a t i o n schools although th/outside. anyway. School T h e r e was no of already t h o s e who want aeeimilated. langu ge t o "be t o h u r r y up a p r o c e s s center expected on force W a s h i n g t o n c o n f e r e n c e many served camp f o r was t e a m was and P r o v i n c e were segregation Japanese t n e people wanted any have would have t a k e n p l a c e toward two TRA t o the including Coverley, Iyer t o b e a " J a p a n e s e 5' rather the thought simultaneously—res&tle to continue r e s o l u t i o n had only Attitude to directors, /X/XM^/^W The S e n a t e At 4 within resettlement tuo programs are going himself of A relocation in 1943 center the part The p e o p l e segregation the project on to a i d of Opler t o c l o s e any centers. and s e g r e g a t i o n . Causes is the functioning and disloyal. thought to Tule Lake together, of or difficult T h e r e was no people sent loyal 2, number want to admitted a l o n e w h i c h was T h e r e was even Journal-a August consideration of "no" and s e g r e g a t i o n as still ^yer or felt other lest that for the another ject directors, bad ones, what saints?" He was want indefinite l-orm i o O as to the matter Personal a t o go b a c k since oi five or way answers. definitely in the are the centers-- the persons there h e r e were He F o r m 1 3 0 was "being and that said felt that that ten years, the even of t h e p e o p l e hod h e would l o o k be center into changed. aayv/ay. centers. to used t h e war w o u l d n o t segregation the people tiling t h e end o f one t o Leuxp that the form c o u l d n ' t from other the sent "but t o l d soz&e p r o - own c e n t e r s . know t h a t Opler the advantage of thinking loyalty, g o o d man" a n a to have in Leupp, a hearing, if that much d i f f e r e n t to for opinion to f e e l actual &o y o u h a v e their man't see long one—not seemed to unfavorably, ana said 5 i s s u e d from Leupp. Opler it is ci* p e r s o n s so p o p u l a r an a p p l i c a t i o n reactea Best a "dam t h « s e men whom y o u sort leaver as 1943 registration to decide a n d / s t i c k "by t h e Coveriey." "If to indicating d e s c r i b e d Best "not in protest evacuees would have they themselves Opler didn't answers 2, be such Consequently, would not He t h o u g h t resettle. be that it he very was He h i m s e l f wat returning to teach in a university, t h e war w o u l d make it more d i f f i c u l t for him, too. attitude out for out of hints the t o make ing of that it evacuees of efforts centers. easier t h i s was Throughout for It on was the the part true of that them t o r e s e t t l e the best for conversation J3 watche d t h e TEA t o f o r c e t h e WKA was m a k i n g on t h e o u t s i d e , t h e m a n d what they people efforts assum- really wanted Journal— for August themselves. t o assume For t h e the fact same r e a s o n t h a t ftLfl/fijlf, t h a t closed for the t h ® e who p r e f e r r e d to r e m a i n . offer to t h e "best an inducement out of for evacuees be was homes. to that that ] any of lege They cut could them d i d n o t being of to stay within move t o find t h e m a j o b on to force a center them out difference in misunderstanding between 2 . M r s . Yemamoto (Block At with economic basis on a c e n t e r for the rest in of the sequently security L a t e l y , Ur . George 3. Yamamoto On the security of need. Con- a privi- some. Any interpreted as an This f o r much o f the evacuees. 25) office with even staff. During suggested 9 yes 1 J S was a b i t offered segregation B l o c k 25 seem r e s i g n e d to to worried of a camp. t h e WRA a n d t h e s h o u l d answer relations prone t o b e as- in case the d u r a t i o n o u t s i d e wat the easier the duration. outlook accounts o p p o s e d J S when h e the U.S. it in T u l e Lake loomed as for beinr of They w a n t e d to t o move as making t h e P l a n n i n g B o a r d J S met M r s . YamamAto, Yamamoto stay the the of having t h e p e o p l e were to leave stay fundamental What back want able first--this for for formulated they would be l e s s a center. fall to effort elements seemed c e n t e r would he had been saw s e g r e g a t i o n disloyal. 6 disadvantage in Tule Lake they would l o s e they sequently, those r e s e t t l e because they were f o r c e d sured segregation Plane t o t h e more l o y a l a c c u s e d of b e i n g about if their jobs 1943 t h e V/RA o f f i c i a l s d u r a t i o n would b e a s e r i o u s the 2, to that to there r e g i s t r a t i o n Mr. t h o s e who want "uestion strained 28. until of recently. the people the loyal group. to Con- introduce a girl i s s u e most to leave with sitting to in Irs. Journal— August Yaxaamoto said papers. But considering t a k e n out that her since his husband had taken she wanted out JS said r e p a t r i a t i o n paper might that 1943 7 repatriation t o go o u t s i d e , application. 2, h e was re- t h o s e who h a d he given a h e a r i n g late. Also, t h o s e *xho made up t h e i r m i n u f i r s t were g o i n g given their s h e w o n d e r e d whe- ther In first. she s h o u l d n ' t ana await his choice her sister other 3. she ikeda is t h e r e . J She w a n t e d is h e was his fingers saia that that he interested he had a l r e a d y that it whether could only took one h a d the 50 p e r successful to Mr. almost or it choice, so g o o d didn't there. cent in such m a t t e r , not. and of t o w e r e a b o v e 2 5 a n d most of t h e com- or partner five and would for or not. He that of Ikeda JS. Cut He of he person said h e was said tell he a marriage marriages the to that would resulting s h i t a no wa ) w e r e r i s k y . t h e men t h a t look six marriages 60 i n a i l . an o l d e r asked .TS r e p l i e d evidently kr. time whether thought He to be a f a i l u r e , eyes of suitable kekkon I k e d a , most 50 or t u r n e d out the all in g e t t i n g married. haddled about of t o man f r o ® S a c r a - f a r m co-op» interested. experienced from love (a u k i a t t e ing into and about a m a r r i a g e was tell lookeci-up ctuld find a suitable h e r e on t h e P r o j e c t , marriages own resettloment. Planning Board, h e d i d n * t h a v e much l u c k thought of her t o know why J u she f o u n d t h e most hiiii up when h e b e c a m e m o r e be since favoring probably affairs—co-op, J S whether to a c e n t e r on m a r r i a g e He h a s p u t munity that husband words, Ikeda mento. g o on a h e a d in ¿ m n e a p i l i s , liihei Mr. Consequently, t o he Accord- baishakunin t h e women w e r e f r o m 2 0 to 25. Journal— he said August that women w e r e m o r e d i f f i c u l t to They b e c a m e m o r e f u s s y their were older. when they wanted 0a K i b e i ) to get practical than good f a m i l y t o wf o r s h i p . t o work lived to marry b a d l y . married girls He he thought (tomokasegi) thought that because to l i v e choice, that be a b l e they even t h e y were more from a she would be good the kind 8 /atanabe he m a r r i e d a g i r l would be b e t t e r in America w o u l a n ' t a n d w o u l d want If 1943 s a t i s f y when Ke a d v i s e d M r . to a luisei in Japan. in Japan, in 2, t h a t ' w o u l d be only willing b e c a u s e p e o p l e who h a d to stay i n M a n c h u r i * or in Japan China. anyway, Journal Wednesday» August 1. Rowalt-Best Yesterday meetinr the messhalls any covered the the fact Probably for that occasion in up of X e s e i s of Isseis xious the to hoar results s t r i k e meeting Mr. Garter expressing or of where that much a s p o s s i b l e . His and c o n s e q u e n t l y p e o p l e o n e way fundamental He was n o t official or policies s t a n d of was g i v e n of the next to to him. difficult j o b of Fr. >mt existed sort of at spoke way, as however, effect on on the to p r e s e n t segregation. of the segregation. and r e s e t t l e m e n t understanding listening s e e m e d an- translated, attempted regards with be avoided t h e WRA c o n c e r n i n g t n e Y7RA i n beyond indignant. h a v e much but it above £0, would have Rowalt frank, and stage in a s i n c e r e d i d not segregation e v a c u e e s who w e r e lator, of showing a l a c k that turned conference, t h e c r o w d was other. ever The p e o p l e s p e e c h was n o t particularly t o u c h e d on b o t h speech, the has misunderstandings probably important The c r o w d was made t h e Denver opened the meeting aesire an that generally tension in t h e p e o p l e w e r e im- flag pole. of speeches. dinnertime the outdoor Hiseis, at a n d Raymond this meeting, than U i s e i s . t h e r e was no f e e l i n g a crowd of the and o l d e r p r o b a b l y more and g a t h e r e d at stage important noon and at / / / in front front outdoor t h e m e e t i n g was the largest t h e grountf street made by b l o c k m a n a g e r s » pressed with out the Director, director, The m e e t i n g was a n n o u n c e d a t one. on t h e Deputy f t f i & t f t t h e new P r o j e c t 1943 neo-ple a m e e t i n g was h e l d which Rowalt, Best, with 4, in the Tsuda, the He same feeling the translating the of trans- t h e whole Journal— all speech/at August once from n o t e s , pretations, consequently pression Isseis to stood i.ngli3h. Lake in mind, here rather care, it plain/ seemed, things speech, settlement at Rowalt*s official and the speeoh of friendliness he said It to the was d u e centers that the^e not two g r o u p s too much, continue this to bring the the public He said to it it the segregation, ¿jtplaining ¿¡as r i o t d u e that future some t o exkind did of and re- the center thought of these showing existed the war, signs of se- clamor. in arid life. had c a u s e The bothering the t h o s e who d e s i r e d unfair affairs. not the the cause there after gave to public One was to Japan those Having some conflicts, to both groups registration two g r o u p s to to the to served eyes of segregation. history was n o t mechanically t h e a u d i e n c e by was existence cause segregation t h e A m e r i c a n way o f of the Tule the Japanese to it within state and outlined that and into the of p e o p l e . lead of t o a v o i d any of realization be J a p a n e s e and r e t u r n who p r e f e r r e d and of rather sympathy, two g r o u p s welfare time. appeal gregation, im- some g r o s s m i s u n d e r s t a n d i n g Rowalt or different w h i c h made translation interpretation t o make a d i r e c t inter- showed a d e s i r e the mention same own 2 had been planned with as p o s s i b l e But 1943 t o t h o s e who u n d e r - the best speakers through mistaken Rowalt*s gave The m e e t i n g fully entirely up p o i n t s and t h e as an spoke w i t h of m i s u n d e r s t a n d i n g . result, Rowalt ^rtd "brought rosy. introduced his giving that Best and 4, of the a new t h i n g . s e g r e g a t i o n movement, At the time of and evacuation, Journal— as August early as May, segregate ever, again ton the loyal at fairly 1942, that time that d i s c u s s e d at this take place. up the time segregation where t h e Denver staff segregation. the d i s c u s s i o n was h e l d on t h e Rowalt then center. The that gregated, a n d T u l e L a k e was from 13,000 such a l a r g e opportunities here transportation to 15,000 one of number. w h i c h made that who p r e f e r r e d stay a s much c a r e a s a n y t o do find to so. it t h e com- further that that the the to p e r s o n s would he se- there in zone were work of less persons other centers. and f a r f r o m work difficult. stigma attached to center. those It deserved centers. should think bring to t o J a p a n would p r o b a b l y t h o s e who d e s i r e d resettle. that There would be than s e g r e g a t i o n would Also, was segregation other the people return easier of in First, as it resettlement t h e r e w o u l d b e no to and t h e whole for Denver t h e number in a m i l i t a r y desiring '/ashing- segregation plans at Third, problem b e c a u s e of opportunities, was t o make p l a n s , of Second, in Tule Lake. T u l e L a k e was advantages that in the few c e n t e r s Fourth, thought accomplished The m a t t e r r e a s o n s were* i n Tule Lake He how- practically conference i n v o l v e d were g r e a t e r said be to matter. estimated Ke up conference felt, meeting was d e c i d e d set 3 e x p l a i n e d why T u l e L a k e h a d b e e n c h o s e n segregation would h o l d was c o u l d not w o r k e d on d e t a i l s Then a t It Directors' it 1945 h a d "been made undertaken. A c o m m i t t e e was of WRA W a s h i n g t o n the disloyal. the Project year, would ing from the proposals a n d c o n s e q u e n t l y was n o t in ¥ay to various 4, to l i v e of some o f the the p e o p l e . find in it Those easier the U.S. would Journal— Rowalt "but , explained fully failed were to the make separate. In August fact, resettlement it clear said that resettlement. t o go to a n o t h e r center said, a s much a i d a s p o s s i b l e w o u l d b e g i v e n . baggages were sections but it not want question, would be also able of transported didn't courtry. intend servant, could a indefinitely. center expired do the next it asked for. as ; r. Rowalt, h; v i n g h e went Lake. Beet b e c a u s e he he s a i d , taken p l a c e . on t o current not guard had given he the the p o l i c i e s in p o l i c y know how t h e A m y outside in of they had that would that speech. the Ee audience friends. segregation accejted. Then would govern Tule were c o n t e m p l a t e d . The the inside the internal the would choose in relocation. for to be civil t h e TRA s h o u l d become reasons said, to r e g u l a t e the of did stay every cent to a d d r e s s that of Congress that The Arm > w o u l d h a v e no p a r t Army w o u l d appropriation who as a they could and f r i e n d l y intended for, various he, made a s h o r t changes would c o n t i n u e in that the policy he wish would resettlement, a n d no one k n e w what This, outline Jo major mean he WRA o f f i c e s of a c e n t e r the people that The Grants and h o u s i n g d i d not directly, charge. T h i s y e a r WRA h a d g o t t e n o u t "by s a y i n g friends of want would b e p a i d anyone out The WRA a p p r o v e d Best* s speech started that 1944, year. jobs force guarantee in June, resettle The WRA e n c o u r a g e d to However, to free segre- t h o s e who do n o t transportation to g u a r a n t e e the to. and d e s i r e 4 t h e two p r o g r a m s g a t i o n would a i d be paid without For 1943 possibilities, that he h a d a l r e a d y 4, of center, t o do it. the center. government. and ."accept he in The did Journal— August extraordinary would v i s i t s cases, and t h e n to and l e a v e pital a kept up, liv/able ships maintained a n d h e w o u l d do h i s place. with only with O y e r ' s from the Project T h e r e would be a good s c h o o l In order the people, from the people he a s k e d a committee w o u l d b e a g r e a t best that be 5 permission, s t a n d a r d hos- t o make T u l e L a k e peaceful relation- a committee be the administration, help 1943 allowed. and a t o work out t o work w i t h 4, chosen since such in promoting peaceful re- lationships. T r a n s l a t i o n by M r . s p e e c h e s , Mr. Division, that ing he Tsuda, took. to say b e c a u s e he Mr. Tsuda ponsible for if they of being left that t h e WRA a s centers. because jobs early He a l s o it disloyal, the of the was of a center, public and to it it Mr. res- group for the ohance point stated on t h e out part of taking to be kept him t o Tule Lake would be a s much a x p e n s e a s p o s s i b l e that Tsuda people s e g r e g a t i o n was more d i f f i c u l t that expect was on t h i s mistake. to t h e loyal speech h e was stand to get that notes was go- was p r o b a b l y a s May, unfair that but was a d e s i r e 1942 Rowalt of h i s segregation time he mentioned first, greatest from t h e translation. they would have stated a n d made Issei their Security one © u l d not translation, in made Internal k n o w what circumstances T s u d a made h i s cause t h e j f y i / ^ / / / of the translation he d i d not accurate Tule Lake f o r c e d out t h a t Mr. the some g r o s s m i s t a k e s fear for and Best t r a n s l a t e d many p a r t s the t o make an The g r e a t e s t By and gave Evidently Under While Rowalt Investigator took n o t e s , incorrectly. of Tsuda the place with the resettle. o f f e r e d fl/Ljt would b e paid, Journal— that as August jots and h o u s i n g though people they were a p a r t out of not want not guarantee what to, mean However, that Congress would Tsuda brought . was in parts own i d e a s . which Rowalt short . w a 8 pancies by k r . of aware of the was p o o r . This had avoided One m a n , M r . speech and done a fairly tell thought Sakahara, heard. good j o b of "loyal" his tran- speech. for the Best's one thing, translation by H a t t i e Isseis, that that thought translating, given Kurose, without the because discre- being translation when a s k e d what said Others besides noted the Many s e g r e g a t i o n was, he had j u s t in his distortion, Katayama. in, throughout Many N i s e i s discrepancies, what did could one c o u l d t h e words was n o t e d by J S , by Y u k i reason for servant, speech used (f u c h u s e i ) between Rowalt*s by G e o r g e S . , the of C a r t e r ' s the public Tsuda. that r e s e t t l e who t h e n a n d no t r a n s l a t e d without- Reaction get s t a y b e y o n d J u n e , 1 9 4 4 be- He a l s o , slation, e c h sounded correctly a public 6 do, and " d i s l o y a l " Pe as to 1943 t h e WRA t o translated could expired (c h u s e i ) s . Ke Rowalt, anyone they a scheme of to f o r c e anyone appropriations adding h i s of the center«* t h e WRA d i d n o t cause would h e g u a r a n t e e d , 4, he thought he had forgotten t h a t Mr. Tsuda had not knowing that he h a d made m i s t a k e s . To u n d e r s t a n d it is them. necessairy At greatest of number of the Isseis t o know t h e u n d e r l y i n g the present a center This the reactions of time Isseis and f o r c e d f e a r was w i d e l y fear the greatest is that t o make s p r e a d among way the which fear they will their to speeches motivates h e l d by be forced in a h o s t i l e I s s e i s when the out world. t h e WRA e m b a r k e d Journal— August upon a program of t u a t e d at on that indefinite ter, and this resettlement t i m e by t h e recourse of n o t the t i m e of paper the the that sort to allay that f o r c e d out motive with this fear a camp. cutting the t o about two-thirds down their t o why it was that getting it was this evacuees just out of since« want to to re- any to even a leave statement to a s s u r e the r e l o c a t e would not to a t t a c h out o f money of evacuee direction. The v o c a l step camps—or in centers recent interpreted, When an segreexplanation especially began in on employees group, pro-Japan, be the to be spent number was another of The m o r e announced without t o b e most s e g r e g a t i o n was the to t h e ;7BA. original ever t h e WRA w o u l d h a v e Japanese people taking place. t h o s e who w e r e l i k e l y of out security signed and not t h e number a s a move i n g a t i o n was a n n o u n c e d , of the the some d a y forthcoming down t h e amount cutting they forced want accen- t o a cen- f o r m was u s e d The p e o p l e h a d come to get f o o d and cast was to d i d not if entirely, a n y p r o g r a m i n s t i t u t e d by so, that to r e t u r n alive Isseis on t h e p a r t Director of w a n t i n g and r i g h t l y was k e p t they would be t h o s e who d i d n o t of program of as afraid Ho a s s u r a n c e from the National people out leave clearance They were center. served went r e g i s t r a t i o n many because of having T h i s was 7 t h o s e who went fear At them. that allowed a camp o n c e I s s e i s gister threat fall. l e a v e would not h e of register last 4» 1 9 4 3 to broad- t h e Y^rocess their own w o r d s j h "O m a e r a C h n s e i - g u m i wa h o o r i - d a s a r e r u no d a k a r a (You loyal ones doubtful a r e going on t h i s point, to be and thrown o u t . ) " t h o s e who Many p e o p l e w e r e suspected that it was untrue Journal— August g e n e r a l l y kept want t o move thought were that still. to another they were not While the pros many Isseis c o n c e r n was w h e t h e r center for the With t h i s lation in order the s t a y i n g or duration if first in mind, it place, to f a c i l i t a t e program, that w h i c h was another mentioned that t h e WRA d i d n o t ment that to r e l o c a t e , this thing the could happen—the e a s y when that other words, it had t h e power if of l i k e l i h o o d was intend assured (Denver, of till the in it that nine It was a n y o n e who the stateThe d a t e any- most likely interpretation of the above program. relocation the centers, c e n t e r s would be c l o s e d . I believe) The 1944, relocation l i k e d with place Tule design. that / / in favor was centers. June, This trans- taking was made s o o n a f t e r the another It to r e l o c a t e to l e a v e . Gongress were the of that a f t e r that b y many I s s e i s of greatest in t h i s was n u l l i f i e d by in favor that of chain i n t e r p r e t a t i o n was b a c k e d up by a f a l s e the papers effect s p e e d e d up assumption/was doing as stay s e g r e g a t i o n was that statement C o n g r e s s was In the the their dif- to. the to be impression evacuees would be a s k e d became one the in but could only be p e o p l e were g i v e n to it should be analyzed. only want minds, g e t t i n g p e o p l e out link living. l e a v i n g made they wanted fear They l e a v e be- t o make a they would be a l l o w e d was d i d not able they of a l l . on i n d e f i n i t e 8 d i d not because center t o make up t h e i r underlying resettlement Lake, of on I s s e i s who h e a r d stated, in t h e "best s u r e of b e i n g and cons 1943 i n Tule Lake especially venturing outside cause for center, T u l e L a k e was a f r a i d of ficult People here 4, statement and then This i n one c e n t e r s would be of Journal— closed, Tule August and only Best ironical thing and i t seem e s p e c i a l l y was translate rosy picture this of i m p r e s s i o n was that sound as the pital though it full l e n g t h . . He p a i n t e d It i n Tule Lake might camp stay after to the it was For stated to get with Dr. not be a b l e to June, stay The p o i n t who w a n t e d n e s e and expected was p u t to giving the that feel in d i d not after over durationBut June, that that other it and stay the duration, in while center 1944. the basis o n e camp was for segregation. to be for t o J a p a n a n d who w a n t e d the other those assured. i n any here. heading even the impression stay c o n f u s i o n was return via since t h e r e w o u l d b e no v i s i t s that of and assurance that for 1944 c o u l d b e that impression point it a s t a n d a r d hos- Pedicord stated Tsuda gave Another here children w h i c h was a b e t t e r assured for be Isseis one t h i n g , a good T u l e L a k e was p e r m a n e n t l y c o u l d not audience staying their that could have been from Tule Lake, the Issei in speech, segregation, made many disadvantage able till made a s h o r t good s c h o o l s would he m a i n t a i n e d a n n o u n c e d by B e s t leaves an<j4t over would be m a i n t a i n e d , they had been Rowalt Best would he had f o r it whereas that friendly. gotten that invalids, their the people, t o o m u c h , ar&rway. the hospital. was 9 them would be n i g h t * 8 m e e t i n g was Consequently, was m e n t i o n e d only in t h e r e w o u l d h e no TUle L a k e — n o t than and one of last t h e T u l e Lake translation. For about made a g o o d i m p r e s s i o n on d i d not it open, 1943 Lake. The the two k e p t 4, camps w o u l d b e f o r those to remain Japa- t h o s e who w a n t e d Journal— to August t h e A m e r i o a n way lead Isseis many or even to return because if they sane day would rather were not way at returning leaving After loyalty disloyalty. Many word could apply zens, and their be w i l l i n g sent but to many "sseis the U.S. t i o n was not and done fusion there Isseis that "American" Isseis their for it laws of to the era e r g e d and was only Issei only a Matter For parents was m e r e l y and with s e e how t h e citi- They m i g h t go out of "loyal" segrega- that it this con- of c h o i c e was of For taking or the to b r i n g a real was some "disloyal" to K i s e i s . work, thorn the part and conto for said Out a matter no political they might on many they the people had "loyal" the and "loyal" of how t h e y w a n t e d the Niseis it of w o u l d make clamor. if And T h e r e was The b a s i s applied about a n d b e e one they might interpretation "Japanese" few Japanese, that Rowalt the success. Japanese effort, to Japan. into a a dreamed already. s e e how t h i s of p u b l i c segregation for were J a p a n e s e determined Isseis. the Except Japanese they the U.S., "disloyal" wanted c o u l d not because was still t h e words t h e A m e r i c a n war because children. the them, they impressing however, could not unclear being to loyalty the again, to camp, citizenship. used 10 some o t h e r t o be a they were to be Tsuda Isseis, to a i d t o obey country 1943 confusing always i n t e r p r e t a t i o n was and over idea. have ceasing could eease other to date. home all, was outside, future their The this the to have American they over This in g&eral American. "disloyal" on T u l e Lake meant allowed or t h e y moved some to stay. i n which if even jtyfif/Isseis their life. resettled to Japan exceptions, of 4, up one— the Journal— category August of These their h a v e a l r e a d y "been o b s e r v e d , documentation will will he b e made on t h e s e p o i n t s How d i f f e r e n t persons observed along with " p u s h " and • p u l l " leaving, which the extent operate to which £ . Mr. on R o w a l t - B e s t This morning JS t a l k e d last night. greatly a w a r e of points, to He h a d h e a r d the fact that that t h e p e o p l e had g o t t e n I R A was of getting the people in t o be b e t t e r this to "The p e o p l e was going last not. The thrown out is going He people the were of saying that it that the and going saids t h i s morning that they were w o r r i e d about a f t e r what to stay impression that camp. are "Japanese" and are going said was thing they He centers, here, "loyal" not discrepancies impression out the was stay t o mean t h a t a lot but to of a to be speech, t h i s b l o c k were s a y i n g the who want Mr. (#25) or are about translation. throw people they would be allowed be this stay. in They g o t of to block to b e t t e r night. whether ready staying t h e r e had been s a i d and Tsuda*s the announcements the Rowalt next such as to t h e b l o c k manager b e t w e e n what most the segregation encourage official etc. meeting 11 and more in interpret other AAsinterpreted, Akahoshi 1943 children. reactions few days. 4f in another after And going think it was it heard most center a year they was or would i f fifJLjt s e g r e g a t i o n to separate t h o s e who want to they that the to be twice before people "American" they leave place." Akahoshi thought that unfortunate that t h e r e had Journal— August been mistakes in no one c o u l d the translation. insure that indefinitely, he thrown a center, thing out of t h e r e were and he a g r e e d 3. see that either, stay see in a 12 that center a person wouldn't J3 pointed t o o many .American to 1943 While he c o u l d a person could could also 4, out captives that be for one in Japanese hands, this. Kibei , A Kibei in the block up o u r m i n d , go a r o u n d hoshi and advising thought 4. Mrs. - r s . that Akahoshi get education they the K i b e i ' s p l a c e was 7e should d o . " a 'Jap. more with they there. in shouldn't I/Irs. Aka- Japan, anyway. l i i s e i s would have a took back But this she school said, country that that Hiseis it right. you'll to for education "That's is dif- e n o u g h money when J S s a i d than a middle in America, trouble J S th&t unless over get to stay only called W e ' v e made trouble. p e o p l e what in Japan who c o u l d n o t the i s n * t any agreed with time better there staying. Akahoshi ficult an so "We1 r e said, was But always be ,H 5 . M r s . Kay a The dent effect of the Rowalt-Best f r o m what M r s . letter to her Kaya former Caucasian whom s h e h a d w o r k e d f o r t o her and h e r own g o o d tion, and Now w i t h with they said a long husband. should they of to JS. employer time, i n Walnut a n d who was that in a r e l o c a t i o n staying was evi- to w r i t e Grove a for sympathetic perhaps center to work a f t e r imminent, Mr. either on I s s e i s She w a n t e d They h a d s a i d c o u l d come b a c k segregation the choice stay Speeches for for their the dura~ t h e war was over. a n d M r s . Kaya w e r e i n Tule Lake or faced leaving. Journal— August 4, 1943 13 Mr. Kaya h a d r e g i s t e r e d b e c a u s e t h e r e was n o t h i n g w r o n g in that. answer 28 Ke h a d made K / / •no* "because he w a n t e d h e r t o b e on t h e same who was a n a l i e n , and therefore they could stay, wer either and both l e a v e . that they were alien, and h i s be d o u b t f u l . Browns, it people, too. and wanted t o do, Mr. as at acceptance If all would be Cn and Mrs. domestics. wherever they that right, opinion wanted if to, they the value still But of the not that treat out the sort of America a loss what matter. disloyal. if out able to is the Japanese yen, M r s . Kaya the said and that that they wanted s e t t l e d down f c v e n i f outside condition be the f e e l i n g able hand, against The B r o w n s , they were they for very t o make a the a l r e d d y becoming b a d . other t o work s a i d to have wouldn' t American d o l l a r J ^ K / t beccme they would not On t h e them as b e f o r e M r . Kaya things that an the "understood" They w e r e a t on isorked. a n d C h i c a g o was as they and were a s s u r e d of b e i n g necessary. - r s . Kaya p o i n t e d classified like t h e r e were o t h e r h a d no c h i l d r e n , t h a n h&fcf of t h e y were a f r a i d go? Kaya was t h e y c o u l d go they knowing they t o M r s . Brown Since war could write > ans- going until i n Denver but thing. t o work a f e w y e a r s ended. change her of a c e n t e r by p e o p l e would o t h e r / hand, their lower money was all Now Kaya h a d b e e n c o n t e m p l a t i n g s a v e some money claimed to Japan. t o do b e c a u s e outside the right and w a n t e d to himself, Americans were good p e o p l e the t o do could M r s . Kaya w a n t e d question side as owed l o y a l t y or l i r e . Kaya a l o s s what to want instance, c l a s s i f i e d as well, living, Japanese Well, d i d not the where t o be may n o t disloyal. Journal— August They w e r e a t a loss J3 pointed d i d not out mean t o k n o w what t o M r s . Kaya that aren't going that the chances that of hire th€5p, was 6. turn Don Best river" about mented introduced that of finding to that pointed thdir a suitable find it going out like doubtful to work, Japanese employment was out employer, among ^rs. wouldn't Americans w h i c h way t h e war conference t o Don S i b e r s o n b r i e f l y . that in having it conference, to the made segregation cen- the the the but he h a d "sold staff. In Tule time of told his staff meeting time, he thought. in which the afternoon those meeting. Ee com- s e g r e g a t i o n was registration. had learned a few things. The w h o l e He t h o u g h t He h a d b e e n a t t i t u d e was that included different in t h e v/RA this Opler JS saw © p i e r in- had t h o s e who w e r e h a n d l i n g this Don was Coverley segregation had another f r o m t h o s e who h a n d l e d different 1 9 4 4 we He t h e m o r n i n g t h e r e had been a s t a f f was Mrs. it. who w e r e h a n d l i n g 7. the t h o s e who d i d n ' t talked Washington nothing June, JS then S e g r e g a t i o n had b e e n d e c i d e d upon a t flj&M/ft In to s t a y . " b e c a u s e he h a d h e a r d cb wn t h e ter. after it. out. Yesterday JS Lake to leave center t h e c e n t e r s w o u l d "be c l o s e d . f f T b e r s o n on D e n v e r dignant to a n o t h e r and better t h a n among J a p a n e s e , 14 translation, their then agreed that would that the advantages Kaya it going h a d "been made i n the possibilities a l s o p o i n t e d out that X hear t o "be a l l o w e d the mistakes and "But 1943 t o do» t n e y w o u l d "be f o r c e d Kaya* s a n s w e r was* 4, again yesterday. Ke seemed r e l u c t a n t to meeting. Journal— reveal August what went on i n the Administrative t o see was the too technical to and of but / / of at t o know i f Denver. groups their effects, licly that thought admitted but congressman the segregation preference Opler himself felt that of p o l i t i c a l words, and that and it to segregation, the that the Ke saw t h e admit of the than N i s e i s that because t h e WRA was interpretation of JS pointed that out the of tiying t h e way to get registration the 'yes' they of cul- from the the segregation In being other the attached others to the considered registered. away f r o m t h e a s much a s answer/e whole loyalty. away in to the stressed. of/fsseis pub- Ke explanation to get stigma place. explaining political a n g l e be incongruence issued had had two b a s e s — o n e involved w i t h no colo- and segregation. significance was b e s t the taking groups difficulty other the pressure o n e camp w o u l d b e a " J a p a n e s e " c a m p , w h i l e former. said the cultural would be "American" camps, loyal the between l o y a l t y being the the t h e WRA c o u l a ^ n o t JS gathered idea would be that stressed segregation cause of vacillated said it something. pressure sociological From O p l e r process the t h e TOA w o u l d h a v e tural idea that in in saying e x p l a n a t i o n had been factor the He 15 he wanted a pamphlet t o know w h e t h e r said that they were that affair. the official had been a major vaguely the an He a l s o w a n t e d Opler and t h a t of that was h i m o f f by should be J S p r o d d e d h i m on t h e m e a n i n g wanted JS h i n t e d t o be h o l d i n g b a c k 1943 a n d what the people. the segregation sensed meeting Opler put understand the benefit good p o i n t s staff Instructions. instructions, issued for nists, the 4, Ke political possible. on q u e s t i o n But were Journal— not August going t o be g i v e n g a t i o n were going given a After that to be his the Opler it JS. 8 . Mrs . satisfaction himself other It is Rowalt-Best There centers, doubtful meeting doubt much p o w e r last i n h e r e or that t h o u g h he might ward with Dr. than people in be help feeling of explain it been poliade- worked trying to aren't going fist Coverley explain on h i s the than to to same a f t e r stay the t o make him. a doubtful he w i e l d s This remarks on h e was n o t is the P r o j e c t . him l a s t nose. of that Mr. night, PB they did ICurose a n d came a man t o be r e s p e c t e d , even Since they same Mr. Kurose snooty, When D r . the enough t r u e of showing one. vry live in the t h e y h a v e had more c o n t a c t wards. last is T h o s e who h a v e h a d c l o s e be a s c h o l a r . other at the to whether discussing Ichihashi, in to leave the Project dislike a g o o d p e r s o n b e c a u s e h e was for should night.^ presence S a k a h a r a were conclusion clenched to they she f e e l s not. mfa o w e r e h e a r d appreciate his "If better i n JS* s m i n d a s member, the segre- Ichihashi w i t h him seem to and Mr. basis difficulty it's that contact not everyone everyone had not said, Ichihashi* & position is for taking place because of had found Ishizuka Two men on D r . Dr. 16 Ishizuka the here." then and a t h e o r e t i c a l Yesterday Mrs. close the b a s i s c o n v e r s a t i o n w i t h OpJe r J S c o u l d n o t to out. to 1943 hearing. pressure, quately If cultural, jiyifi/^ji^XA s e g r e g a t i o n was tical 9. a hearing. 4, Issei said that w i t h him h e was n o t and h e r e he put Ichihashi meetings, his translated he to picked Journal— August on s e v e r a l p e r s o n s who h a d a s k e d ignoranoe. One p e r s o n flljiji "K a n a i wife, but ga the futari I m a s u»/ same w o r d i s Ichihashi h a d two w i v e s . need to Mr. was C o v e r joined h e had s a i d or audience. to About s u c h an a c t thought that Ichihashi Hr. a man going 11. At said that way m e a n s á ightly different family two of in family, he meant said that that he t h e r e was n o p e o p l e were a meeting recently becoming of Dr. he d i d not re- before Mr. in a a person think i n an that the that large protest Sakahara a l e a r n e d man l i k e proud of beating he something out Ichihashi. that he had committee for the audience walked the part that two). the a n d h a d made h i m a p o l o g i z e of their o f an o l d m a n . t h e r e was no n e e d f o r to r e s p e c t 10. Mr. "I'd on t h e r e were the hospital half to f e e l Sakahara of done (a 17 mentioned because he always mentioned teacher. p r o a c h e d a member in a asked whether i n and Ichihashi y's used in a n g e r e d Mr. Kurose b e c a u s e the mistake Sakahara t i r e d of Dr. pointedly This expose that question Kan a i u s e d futari-ganai The man o b v i o u s l y » e a n t Dr. also 1943 and exposed t in his f c a y t o mean f a m i l y — e . g . but questions 4, Dr. argument. scholar was (jinkakusha). Kurose like to be J o h n D. J o h n D. t o go o u t safer the country the country to work. than in the I think it*s city." Cook Cook's are notorious. conference, in to inferiority This storjfc t r i c k l e s w h i c h J o h n D. showing p e o p l e a letter t h a n k e d Cook f o r complex and h i s back from the Cook a t t e n d e d , f r o m J o h n C. t h e good r e p o r t s lack fíe Baker, that of ability Denver was g o i n g around in which he he w r o t e . As a m a t t e r J O U r n a l fact, " hie Augu 81 4 , first good r e p o r t , t e n by F r a n k M i y a m o t o . for a i m by K i r o s h i for Baker letter have go a b o u t never that so l o w t h a t resigning was a s k e d w h e t h e r i n T u l e L a k e " was others At a s k e d Cook why h e went had w r i t t e n felt Several iiugasawara. b e c a u s e Baker himself "Fears any h e went of rate, were writ- written a man who w o r k e d the reports. Cook is a r o u n d a s k i n g how h e been a 18 showing p e o p l e t o Cook. from his p o s i t i o n . he had ever reports around r e a d any letter 1943 At another that He said to should time he Journal— ) Thursday, August 5, 1943 J o h n Mat sumo t o Yesterday said: of JS spoke "Yeah, the people stay the in to John Matsumoto to get more a c c u r a t e the t r a n s l a t i o n was a w f u l . this ing in here. About b l o c k a r e now s a y i n g We*11 h a v e to wait latrine. for He 60 p e r that cent t h e y a r e go- t h e pamphlet to information." 2 . Hi s h i d a s The H i s h i d a s Mr. Hishida we could said, stay the loyal out of go another 3. "People here." instance, renting gine. all. Japanese there and r e l a t e d a r e not t w e l v e or haven't very "We m i g h t as to Colorado well because (alibi) they are that I'm They encouraging. Housing, people dollars are a week—ima- There are dentists, other too farmers, don't of there want trying already. The to c o n t r o l any more J a p a n e s e there Japanese is and so much com- d u m p i n g p r o d u c e on t h e m a r k e t . t o o many t o h a v e a l a r g e number each there JS: a chance. are giving association there are fifteen got to imagine, already—doctors, faimers farmer's in because recently for Japanese let to get t o s e e how c o n d i t i o n s worse t h a n you can that to on S p o k a n e just success. saids t o go going that thinks."^n to Spokane petition without Nishida others. said so h a r d not makeoshimi trailers many J a p a n e s e trying It*s i n Spokane Japanese They a r e n ' t there. is with Rowalt like returned "Conditions to. that We'd Corky ¿¿¿¿/¿¿fa for Mrs. leaving saying they a r e as Mrs. Matsubara He their center. Gorky Kawasaki went were. are i f we want s t a y when we h a v e f r i e n d s saying, discussing here ones people see were It's i n one p l a c e it, t o come not because good Journal— August they incur the your own p e o p l e may h e a g o o d want it that two or with business the a chance home idea The city to gain licenses of l o o k i n g in S e a t t l e . but the Hakujins. us to scatter--to doesn't want a foothold to over the all, I h a d one b u s i n e s s it didn't turn in They out was c l o s e groups aren't I went there taking t o my f o r m e r opportunity right. don* t Japanese situation before it among disperse. t o go anymore. 2 outside anymore there. Jsganese After Living i d e a , "but p e o p l e i t 1 s " b e t t e r not street in t h e E a s t . had in mind, going want of They want the three. and d o e s n ' t giving way. dovn Even g o i n g of resentment 5» 1 9 4 5 that I I'm thinking JSact." "I've been The camp i s to Minidoka, s p r a w l e d out and wide, it's not s u c h a good I don* t k n o w wfciy." place. of Journal— 1. Friday, Gunderson v.s. with in of v i e w on teachers explaining t h e words the seem t o segregation the segregation. corning use. The going to be a l o t and "disloyal," latter of stressed loyal a Japanese it s h o u l d toot be m e n t i o n e d at 2. school the views that up, the present t h e wrong avoided there When t h e using are possibility Karkness said time because that it impression. Appropriations According a meeting g i v e out going t o FO, D r . that Jacofey the fact in June, 1944 to be f o r c e d 3 . Yamamoto out that of the special at time of registration segregation is being on t h e The Yamamotos group between and the K/X/^ Kibei school mean to have explained that the at would evacuees were centers. attention split 25, said t h e Y/RA a p p r o p r i a t i o n s d i d not family the is family F r o m now on in their while Karkness the fact , a meeting Gunderson kept h e r e was b r o u g h t outside public At both gave children. of two d i f f e r e n t question. yesterday, "loyal" would g i v e represent day b e f o r e their 1943 liarkness Gunderson and Karkness points August segregation are a married Isseis, Sacramento the become falling the Kiseis, to a n d was evacuation. Isseish, a n d he m a i n t a i n s Japanese variety. urban of splits evident, registration/ couple, thirties. i n Jap& n , prior also to patterras Naturally who a r e a b o v e 4 0 . in his fpfffl education of be p a i d is^ue. will b a s e d on the m a j o r i t y will since results. in the who a r e age beiow M r . Yamamoto is a He h.ns h a d a n o r m a l teaching His cultural Japanese ideas are standards school tyrioally of a 6 Journal-- August M r s . Yamamoto in a typical Japanese is in her J a p a n e s e home fluently, she related that it that twenties, prefers that she is to and she had sit h o u r b e f o r e h e came t h r o u g h w i t h what a s k e d which the boss boss At the the 1.iseis, take as well wow t h a t and was not didn't thought of and have her Analysis mean i isei going It This women. is in general the is he w a n t e d to family, she married, d i e knew half and say. When replied: the wife this t o spoke J^I&n, himself. imminent, recently to stay ahead the said here. is the Mrs. in favor of a n a went to Yamamoto ,! split She thought especially fellows latter have the are that true are in to their generally d e s i r e d by the backing of that her of he huswished. family, later. of a l . i s e i relationship d i s l i k e d by their out, a Kibei the former. the Kibei I s s e i s were d o e s not status inferior if her with her and j o i n the evi- t o go that her, center status yes.w h a s become that, she wanted to a n o t h e r generally - h i e ' ' *gain I n many f a m i l i e s but is Kibei ftiseis Lake, for should be n o t e d while side, papers husband change h i s women, their family. to h e r , to change h i s mind and j o i n f e l l o w in America fellow. when y o u g e t the i n f l u e n c e d by h i m a n d r e g i s t e r e d segregation band would have She of speaks English, for as K i b e i s , X ^ / ^ / X / / / / K r s . Yamamoto she the in and w a i t r e g i s t r a t i o n M r . Yamamoto returning repatriation evidently in ohe up family." t i m e of out dent. o n e was y o u know, G . , in speak the boss to brought While when M r . Yamamoto p r o p o s e d cnming, "Well, a n d was in Sacramento. still M r s . Yamamoto b e l i e v e s She late 1943 families with $isei Also, on at a disadvantage. in favor of staying seem t o b e true in Tule o f M r s . Y amain© t o « s family. Journal— August 4. matsuda is a Kibei, technical America. Ke h a d outbreak of but who h a s training intended the war, in received the field to r e t u r n but with that a college of possibility the present, he w a n t s t o go o u t a place for himself. the of a l o n " with cation. of n great Until and lost sequently he when ing been of of people surround about His to h i s father of farmers his point Matsuda his is a very of to be view, wanted that favored 28, a leader a Because he tried successful. of f r o m him ( B l o c k t i e with to Hav- the majority strong to a n d con- "no." tools, was n o t the fence a n d edu- threatened registered but but His up, and that father 41 the very on r a r e hardheaded, County. only sort sister e v e n now M a t s u d a he wanted t o k n o w what His were to dances of P l a c e r his one. parents he g o e s especially hills once mentioned father he conservative himself. parents from the he him. like seems question f e e l s /i/i/ a t h e way h e was b r o u g h t reveal to to design machine s i d e of longer family just register, other h e no a Kibei father "yes" the considered His the t o make b l o c k as h e was from the block p e o p l e , i n Ward V ) , Matsuda*s that friends. immediately, the of t o work in h i s in to £ out registration reppected his educa- o t h e r s who h a d f o r e s i g h t after a job alienated that time d a r e d answer answer whom w e r e on but he d i d he had an o f f e r change his many t h e n h e was most disown him i f is At t h e young p e o p l e , inu, 3 aeronautics to J a p a n p r i o r q u e s t i o n at it, 1943 family Matsuda t i o n and 6, t o go perhaps strict cannot occasions. typical His mother holds to h i s out to work, o f w o r k h e was g o i n g sees own. and to Journal— do. August When he h e a r d that e x p l o d e d and d e c l a r e d going out t o do It that effort, Japan, ¡¿atsuda* s f a t h e r t h e war soon and out He*s of The during tfork. t h e open Being main with and repatriates, them. is The Kis his is ment. time and out that being father is Japanese and be much time. The a n d when h e quietly the took except would not slipped t o win i n Ame- the family quietly, have toward going the present settled Kis split off to out t i e d up that of strongly that he's He knows he industry, are into His mother don't sees in his where a that someplace. out draft if If defer- h e may b e the p o s s i b i l i t y point his experience, he can get trust family, Matsuda He f e e l s he goes stay the center, himself that if changing Matsuda eldest valuable for that t o re- t h e war may l a s t the war. can g a i n afraid ever them to J a p a n . that he f e e l s they the in a " d i s l o y a l " J a p a n may l o s e evidently deferred. is f a m i l y haa intentions insists a n d make a p l a c e parents but of M a t s u d a * s t o go b a c k w i t h t o work n o w , i n a war drafted, at helping to Japan, has brought the rest be r u i n e d . make some m o n e y , he was in there They h a v e no to be future will he goes in Japan argument duty d o e s not long Japan he again. status. it that however, in Tule Lake. their thought 4 those treachery no h o p e f o r c l e a r a n c e h e would Segregation, that everyone to would be some money b a c k registration received his is for himself objected A machinist there papers even believes 1943 a "machinist,» which would be a sent latter a chance for split that already repatriation iaatsuda. people farm work, t h e A m e r i c a n war rica. was a j o b a s 6, of v i e w , of and does Journal-not August ofcj^rt e* strongly Matsuda feels and h i s father. without causing his father. the The thing for as only felt it because different. and quietjy it. xiext rents went door that over seems 5. d i d not The to help the the is the the of v i e w and thought that l e a v e when the to d i s c u s s and does about time life and argue facts the the came. but know what went argue best matter segregation, not parent to perhaps s o n was h e a r d a r g u i n g of on with his and Matsuda*s with h i s in pa- father son. Such i n Ward V. loyal they thsfct in ones aren't say that them stay here in the we a r e that Isseis loyal where i n fi&jL there to be a l l o w e d going to send is to a stay them o u t here.M first, on." trouble. Why d o n ' t they let place." a s many p e o p l e expect a big problem. that are first to get How c a n y o u is going them l r t e r to a l l trying three those families they go "They're of room. they t o mean points their other "»Vhy do "This try a conversation a n d perh*-~s r e t u r n sible. to quiet it shower understand "Yes, leave useless to l e a v e Tule Lake, tenor following split himself confusion B l o c k 25 i n "I him to 5 center. betv/een for to keep a s the ¿ i s e i he wanted to be Issei attend was He A b l o c k m e e t i n g was h e l d Matsuda a split t h i n g now i s that h i m t o do was possible, of another 1943 t o o much h a r d f e e l i n g b e t w e e n h i m s e l f Ke entirely leaving for inevitability w i t h him l o g i c a l l y , were to h i s 6, out of here them to s e n d anyone b a c k I f we l e a v e t o America this and not place, loyal as pos- here?" it's to going Japan. Journal— We a r e August still able t o come That stwp thankful This Japanese on p^jk o u r b a s s p o r t for that being place and get JS explained the loyal but only ways idea and see, the that trouble "They mean they, centers? so they in to be tie get to leave this Thqy k n o w v e r y w e l l g r o u p of centers, the d i s l o y a l . up out? demanded then for he explained it t h e y want to segregate the i n t e r f e r e with pro-Axis a n d how t h e M r . Kaya the that 'disloyal'." t h e s e g r e g a t i o n movement, a small the to can't stamped as b e i n g of to. forget." t h e WHA a n d f i n a l l y they won't allowed us t o make p e o p l e want history partially, "I so that camps of 6 r e a s o n we w e r e s o m e t h i n g we h a v e to JS: don't l i k e being the groups hounded the done out don't caused said ones h e r e , Isn't ning with is a n d w h i c h we c a n ' t morning Mr.'Kaya Japanese The o n l y t o A m e r i c a was b e c a u s e J a p a n the disloyal zers citizens. 6» 1 9 4 3 begin- sympathi- pressure segregation s a w some to himself light, in troublesome others of leaving this ones the tffilffl.* M r s . Kaya said: "Isn't t h e Army g^-ing t o take over Tuie Lake?" 6. Analysis During tial niseis to r ^ a i r step i n t o war confusion loyal industry at The I s s e i s of the issues t o make up to to g e t t i n g only a matter everyone iBsei registration wanted ing of their the United the loyal and normal getting one were only were time in States ones back For clearance order asked whether clear. mind whether life. leave fairly or the t h e y w e r e go- not, into The Army as an ini- t h e Army a n d Isseis it applications to f a c i l i t a t e they would be was from resettlement. law-abiding Journal— or not. The o n l y was n o t it August taken felt so that issue difficult in a see To go b a c k a in dangerous turn Japanese Isseis citizens, as Uiseis, in order and it dif- simple idea rumors difficult were presented when The f i n a l speaking reason and always been to help Japan "disloyal" of potentially t h o s e who w o u l d f r o m t h o s e who of an questioned, alien because citizen. he Therefore, be a p p l i e d appropThey segregation. could/ be, terms a n d was s i n c e many p e r s o n s dis- c o u l d not loyalty the and allegiance to H i a e i J because their generall, the f i r s t the there are dangerous, c o u l d not be Consequently, were atied q u i t e is even a if an different that the dangerous t o become an A m e r i c a n and rfjifc a p p l i e d w i t h questioned. even is understand to segregation has separating country "loyal" r i a t e l y to were, between ways, law-abiding. allowed carefully the p e o p l e , making it clearly, disloyalty. it t a k e n by Then while manner. the U.S. to his terms American of but to over Isseis. f r o m t h o s e who w e r e n o t against was n o t of Issei getting the issues little terms would remain the the an or care that the c e n t e r s , and added and of the f e a r s straightforward cusssed for felt loyalty 7 that segregation s t a n d s hsar e b e e n translation them to Xsseis b e no M i s u n d e r s t a n d i n g , very who p l a y u p o n of explain t h e WRA p e r s o n n e l , of Many s t a k e was b e i n g made t o the people—especially for fully. issue at Conflicting s e g m e n t s of to is is clearly. ficulty the there will that it 1943 r e g i s t r a t i o n was t o f o r c e p e o p l e out that An a t t e m p t during to explain was a s c h e m e others trouble 6, to America "loyal" applied d i d not they were to make a and second g e n e r a t i o n could be and "disloyfcl" Isseis sharp Japanese. as well distinction When Journal— August trouble o c c u r e d w i t l i na schemes i n t e r f e r e d w i t h "by a c e r t a i n population, this center also often thought Here t h e u s e of again came p o p u l a r , public of which loyalty For or that cially those not fairly were later the Consequently, by the fact applied 3, in to to evacuees, Japan. " d i s l o y a l " bethe outside serious Incidents. to the segregation determining f a c t o r s were that at first, but inespe- registration from the d i s l o y a l . the Niseis step before The this or was applying a process not. q u e s t i o n was segregation the words themselves. which were used is "loyal" the leave and not. looked not the applica- clearance— t h e words Chusei toward On A u g u s t the words Chusei or determined whether taking place, meeting could be t h i s was for Nevertheless, (disloyal) that only But did Isseis segregation ¿ ¿ f t y . / o f took p l a c e . who w e r e the RowaltBBest employed to registration which presumably Now t h a t were for and " d i s l o y a l " and F u c h u s e i They loyal t h e more of as t h e y would be l a w - a b i d i n g "loyal" were dangerous evacuee to a s k whether first Isseis, of s o many o t h e r same q u e s t i o n the to or and was a m a t t e r the loyal upon as ble but sympathetic changed accounts it the was r e c o g n i z e d by many WRA o f f i c i a l s , divide asked "loyal" added a c o m p l i c a t i o n the Hiseis it "pro-Axis" t h e P o s t o n and Manzanar disloyalty, volved of 8 "loyal" to g e n e r a l l y to b e u s e d w i d e l y by r e a d newspaper registration process. segment "troublemakers." the words incidents—especially The and as being a n d came 1943 and c o o p e r a t i o n w i t h o p p o s i t i o n was r e f e r r e d being ftfff/fytjtj " a g i t a t o r s " 6, they (loyal) Isseis. Isseis are "disloyal" confused are being fl/Xt/XHt/MXtM/MMMlM t r a n s l a t o r , Mr. and F u c h u s e i throughout, Tsuda, even had though Journal— both in August speakers meticulously the Tulean Dispatch were parts Mo. 1 0 0 y ^ V p r i n t e d a n d following terms apart the for residing The J a p a n e s e The is during of the generally Isseis a protest be for reserved help to Niseis t h e A m e r i c a n war t o America right or thing. t o Japan. He that a Japanese, for minds to being classified declare that they the present o n e way or the the loyal as are are He "disloyal," loyal Mr. that is two This they they should willing being "loyal is merely doing the be disloyal t h e WRA d o e s n o t should apply to classification T h o s e who h a v e made up t o J a p a n do n o t since Japanese. it inIsseis of their seem t o mind carries the T h o s e who a r e q u i t e make u p Akahoshi, to i s not the seem to be h a v i n g situation. ...) these that and can*t that given loyalty t i m e and cannot other he and d i s l o y a l expediency. their that too, he f e e l s stated K u r o s e , who to Japan. the parents children preting is the words their tation says Consequently, tend that He f e e l s effort "Those seshi appropriateness. Mr. "disloyal" into: of only. their ( J i b u n wa o shi.1l thought set hostilities." t h e use of She is that toward Isseis. the ancestry indicated to J a p a n . " w e l l - e x p r e s s e d by M r s . Murayama who applied and "Which retranslated its 5 Instruction Japanese de a r u k o t o 1943 9 On A u g u s t Japanese, the present c o u l d be chusei c o u l d n 11 be at persons they were l o y a l taishite of into c e n t e r s who h a v e Japan that reaction words of translation indicated Nipp o n n i is with use. of A d m i n i s t r a t i v e translated residence lie their t o d e s i g n a t e T u l e Lakes in r e l o c a t i o n loyalties who used avoided 6, their the hardest connowavering minds time the Block I'anager interof Journal— August B l o c k 25 i n d i c a t e d this when h e t h e b l o c k were b e g i n n i n g t o leave because they were b e i n g to be " l o y a l " that Tule Lake being want for disloyal to be themselves Practically and all Question 28, On or children I s s e i s who r e g i s t e r e d which asked whether to Japan", "disloyal which of "1. home, (TD, t h e words pret August 4, "loyalty" of 1943) At not future jeopardized. "yes" to law-abiding. t h o s e who w e r e t h o s e who l e f t and 11 were for conference being as terms choice "loyal" to his separated future home." the to eva- inter- eulturj^ rather to be a f e e l i n g it was of of to to considering "no" answer on t h e b » s i s on unfair they were asked the p o s s i b i l i t y changing h i s in their desired of avoid future sympathetic seemed the to be their that M M M f L t / M M question e v i d e n c e was in to Rowalt States Analyst, There on n o t still two g r o u p s t o Japan as disloyalty" responsible 28 a s the the Social allegiance. t h e Denver "disloyal." the United s o m e o n e who i n s i s t e d Other that WRA o f f i c i a l s these people evacuees make. to T h o s e who l o o k than political hold 3 indicated such as O p l e r , the part answered of did o f TOA o f f i c i a l s " l o y a l " and T h o s e who l o o k and 2. cuees, their was to Jaja n . • s p e e c h on A u g u s t as: later i n .America sepawting c o u l d mean whether they t h e y would be A t t e m p t s w e r e made on t h e p a r t t h e use here choice The f e a r hand, and in their "disloyal." "disloyal" How t h e s e g r e g a t i o n p r o c e s s was "loyal i n making other 10 the people asked d e f i n i t e l y the being their 1943 they would be a c c u s e d to Japan» stamped as that to h e s i t a t e t h e y were going by l e a v i n g said 6, to other considered. f a c t o r s might contribute to the interpretation that Journal— there August s h o u l d "be no Tule Lake. One mine l o y a l t y stigma is or the fact reactionary Row a l t ' s thorne that taking place* quate the families se^rr^tion Another contrary. the TEA, of in Opler, together loyal deterthat appeasing spite Jacoby, t o t h e Denver factor 11 in d i d not in jftfji fflf&ji t h e r e a l i z a t i o n were kept of remaining a means the t h e y went 1943 v^f a realization groups iw s ere a major Another those registration is to protect stated before the p r e s s u r e long as to to undertaken as public statement all that disloyalty. s e g r e g a t i o n was b e i n g the attached 6, of Silver- conference segregation that as t h e r e c o u l d b e no ade- from the d i s l o y a l . There is a f e e l i n g among many p e o p l e t h a t t h e p o p u l a t i o n i n T u l e L a k e a f t e r s e g r e g a t i o n i s n e t g o i n g to be so v e r y d i f f e r e n t f r o m that Mf^M i n o t h e r centers. Journal-1. Talk Dr. talk Saturday, with Dr. Jacoby ftUMH went to other to standing ward of Consequently, able answers best" seem t o b e a r step, Dr. time of the of quite those consider their it Dr. that f u t u r e home rather outside sure movement. Jacoby* s only a in that ago. pressure. saying that at the clamor. their present it would have b e e n Ke said he lie t h e m t o make a under having contrary, "second that just Consequently, as influenced a g r e e w i t h Rowalt to ask than America. to t h e is outside recognized a year Rowalt* s s t a t e m e n t was it c a o s e d by p u b l i c said i n Tule Lake it. impar- i n San F r a n c i s c o and d i s l o y a l t y centers. to- about most and Dr. d i d not t o many p e o p l e Jacoby has under- segregation was r i g h t i n T u l e Lake would be in o t h e r public still wasn't Ke sympathetic was d e f i n i t e l y took p l a c e he had b e e n done those Rowalt being loyalty t h o s e who B t » y e d as the to point. He f e e l s but fair circumstances. it of thought, that s e g r e g a t i o n not if this segregation evacuation, wasn't get is the ¿ ¿ ¿ ¿ ¿ t VRA t o o k a g a i n s t the fact choice between ter out the 1943 able a good and emotional represents Jacoby J S asked whether it He irrational groups. which acknowledged discussion and a l s o has to ask him a few q u e s t i o n s , the pressure on being a n d was from Washington. people. he p r o b a b l y Segregation, by sociology view pne c o u l d p o s s i b l y J S was conference and p e o p l e the Japanese them w i t h o u t tial t h e Denver in 7, Jacoby directors a good b a c k g r o u n d August that as of law-abiding he p r e f e r r e d decided t o make Kowever, thought t o fcut a s t i g m a of many bet- in that to Japan spite the disloyalty on of journal— August those remaining Dr. the in Tule Jacoby p o i n t e d segregation, w o u l d make for it however, though easier for it some g o o d come o f that was u n f a i r those in would happen and wanted to stay he s a i d , forced out at the point people could either force JS word " l o y a l " he himself Niseis, more other for some. canters to used just dangerous or this or g o . It relocate, t h e word to a p p l y he d i d not agreed equally thought to that in JS more w t e t h e r it to know, meant terms dangerous however, that t o go think if that to this, of the although Isaeis and t h e word h a d politic-I Isseis loyalty. a p e r s o n was the U.S. that to use to b o t h a narrow meaning that be mean expected appropriate Jacoby He they'll out. quite Br. it. that "loyal" Ke d i d n o t that anyone was n o t use think They w e r e a n l y meant potentially interested »1 d o n ' t Isseis. when h e d i d than about it t o t h o s e who w e r e a bayonet." to get that to He a g r e e d w i t h was He would be u s e d explained of stay t h e y were " l o y a l . " or were not. He concerned point. F r a n k Ki e h i d a Prank Hishida is 2 instance. When a s k e d what 2. 1943 Lake. out, even 7, alone here, changed his of work, fíe education is a Kibei üuring answer. thought h e was w i l l i n g most of his Kibei t a k e n up K i s e i registration K® i s that or t r a i n i n g , that who h a s trying Xibeis he registered to get ought out to get Then a s k e d a b o u t to take friends the a ch< n e e w i t h were going to it. stay ways. "no,no," t o do some out he He said but sort and get draft here. He some said that Journal— 1. Sunday, Block 39, M. a is of, a n d on cause of h i s whenever o l d man. "but now h e h a s proud t o p of and that tears himself a great talk t h e war at In J S ' s T h i s m o r n i n g M. stopped pect got to pass for the fairly offered M. to said that after is with ^eti'rn he'd and went to My "Yes, repatriation the t i m e we of register papers, is either. but back here doesn't The G o v e r n m e n t place, !". h a s the to M. and he some r e s - co-op, a n d who JS had b o t h for center. to wait him, M. Japa- and even the war. The asked that latter if he he might till then. said that Then JS he w a s , let doesn1 t I didn't We w e r e g o i n g they wouldn't on a f u r l o u g h . him, to I ' m goi nr intend to l e t to register. take out a c c e p t ¡LjL t h e m a t office. t h e Army h e c a n come b a c k h e r e Government JS's had hopes (bad boy). t o o k t h e m up t o t h e t h e Army who listen explain: I ' m a baddo boi son a i d n ' t of Since stay. to Type A. JS answered to He and l i k e s J S was g o i n g a w a y . have be- show o f f often. a n y o n e who w i l l to o r g a n i z e to another h e w e r e goi ng /en to once be in g e n e r a l apart with Japan, in front to J a p a n . the w a r - ^ / / ^ really t o Japan w i t h him a f t e r a s k e d him i f lit 1943 h e was He w a n t s people Isseis. M. t o know w h e t h e r to that disliked a typical education,/^ h e was g o i n g intended deal who h e l p e d take him back wanted said t i m e of day w i t h J S . well n e s e and American is other h o b b l e d by the Hisei along he length with o p i n i o n he is personality. identifies him. It n o t h i n g which he c a n antagonistic he c a n , about 8, Type A a dissatisfied success, August stay I h a v e one son in When h e g e t s out with us. the t o go shoot the Japanese If someone. people Journal— stay in August the centers for a long a r e going to a r e going t o he d i f f e r e n t . priations, and the centers a scheme JS: of parents. that "Yes, probably is of leave think that out like (He's the in Tule Lake, per person Ms in h e r e "Yes, The war most may Ja s t sometang is going strong enough she doesn't make that that to want a long run out Most number There are with their Government would t h e camp a ^ l o n g are as hands?" saying that. to have It t o make time, it's going especially for to be t h e young of money, you w o n ' t people are in- be s p e n d i n g $20 able or to £25 now." families two o r are but this is spending three years, to result taken a few p l a c e s , Japan f e e l s only subject.) staying earn any, of embarrassed convenient i f you is of These to stay in J a p a n e s e some p e o p l e he changes centers. have I know t h a t Even approoiit a large work. the U.S. persons lasts to the c h i l d r e n who w i l l t h e war go o u t There a r e to that. the This ssgregation Matsumoto* these things the people able of aprropriations t o make getting 2 idea." "If people. has a g e who c a n n o t do you 1943 from J u l y 1 of the admission, JSs and Congress a r e American p r i s o n e r s Ms The 60 y e a r s to be t h r o w any year, them t o work. ^ot Ifow, next in favor h e r e , Mr. over going there is and put "Look people will dare it to f u r t h e r Isseis also r u n out time. 8, by a war but then. she d o e s n ' t that t a k e back Kiska intend now. MtfUt talks to beat she just anytime $25 per person. I jfyjf// t h i n k America t o do s o now b e c a u s e sacrifice about can't she wants she d o e s n ' t of that having Japan. lose. to, want America has fj^/fff-^/lMt^/Xaken She' but to a Journal— August few p l a c e s , lost "but a that's nu^er The J a p a n e s e only for o f men i n Bisei soldiers iiseis put cause they side. to try couldn't reply fool training Niseis at flag, as decoys. Japanese the Japanese t r a i n e d not to be soldiers afraid they were r e a c h e d whereby Japanese prisoners talk incessantly JSs M: "How i s and to "It'getting t h e Board of D i r e c t o r s ) as possible, and stocking n e c e s s a r y w* c o u l d f ^ j t not going Co-op to of him, s h o u l d k e e p some f u n d s school we d o n ' t ha$e t h e way Kubo and a l s o to use them They've been to the last flag even an agreement agreed to ask flag." was the (M c a n along?" a bad Kuramoto i n amy m o r e , it to talking, on h a n d to be over to have funds like that. is If is the people says able to that People things, are the start the Dispatch. doing to it's Kuramoto Elberson take ought T h o s e who again. but of a^iiiueh c a s h t h e members. either. Manager) They get f r o m t h e 7RA. the {¡President reputation. to (General but t h e Co-op over help all stand for Japanese Japanese up a J a p a n e s e serious. distribute l i b e r son d o / The They're die r a i s e a Japanese has remain behind can r e b u i l d demand letting soldiers. indefinitely.) pretty Stop used that. They'll put t h e Co-op coming do a s we s a y . like J a p a n e s e commander not they from the t h r e a t e n e d with a gun, the about are d i f f e r e n t . Some J a p a n e s e p r i s o n e r s though lost to use J a p a n e s e to d i e . She w e r e a n n i h i l a t e d be- to a s i g n a l Camp S a v a g e that Japanese but 3 those few p l a c e s . said the 1943 satisfaction. that. America also to f o o l up a J a p a n e s e You c a n ' t man. It own taking r a d i o "broadcasted 2 0 , 0 0 0 men a r o u n d H u n d a . her 8, don't But like either. a Journal— August 8 , ( A s s i s t a n t General Manager) He s e n t T s u n o d a / o u t of t h e c e n t e r . ?eople a r e n ' t stand for going monkey-business. t o be mobbed a t If the gate. h a v e b e e n m a k i n g money a t moto in doesn't know what the various a n d do a i l oi doing of as the people touch I say them o f f . doing. he d i d n ' t it implies have that these expense.) should be, to it's all stand for to r u l e , but shouldn't should easier with a Just stubs himself right. it. two And 2 u g i - collected clearly to o u t , l&e' s to run around out 4 going T h e r e would h a v e b e e n an going opinions to get When h e The B o a r d members way statement Otherwise, one word will allow tneir a b i d e by own t h e wish of people." J S was g e t t i n g w h i l e M. of (He t h e B o a r d comes aren't individual the If tries the member's he^s the work. it. of policy wards, Ktlbo 1S43 to 2. Manji talk things conversation. Finally M. after He f i d g e t e d , yi about 4 > minutes a s k e d J G t o come a r o u n d some over. family to K & t t i e , except Masako, ter secretly she wanted about the they p a r t e d . According gister, of t a l k e d on a n d o n . talking, time tired this, because to g e t ana t h e w h o l e Kan j i the eldest girl. her b o y f r i e n d had out of reported camp. family One o f to the rest t h e m a r e now s a i d XK t o b e a g a i n s t of d i d not She went to reregis- registered, too, the found sisters the feasily• Masako for taking All and out of such a step. It seems there. that family tragedies are being enacted here and Journal— 1. Monday, here "I want t o get in an r.ere. education or of however, go o u t until 1943 to school 2. iiasami Masami has fering ie to lost ana to a quiet stick other is for one t o work Masami ness, of agáinst to get lack staying to yes and cannot hearing, ^e the dra' t . point. is success have given the t o go fundamental idea out, nature, Kis he registered He was thinking of going judo. of with the doing His draft him to start K l s asks do b e c a u s e he busi- uncle believes that him wants a cleaning in J a p a n , that and seems he be in it 6ut uncle wants ar^ything more h e r e uncle pa- u n c l e was didn't teach his a n d an he church it the business of to thought. Consequently, s t u d y i n g now. of to going in pre- Recently, although clear to Japan s e x v e r y much, taken »yes' college, answer, or stay to to h i s Judo. His registering to h e c a n make a is and independence perhaps return up of accepted. w h i c h Masami I f Masami best stay are He h a s g o n e and h a s changed h i s in here to to however, opposite with g i r l s . his it the studies on t h i s or stay It's than clearance chance with i n .judo, places and l a t e r time a leave in with to h i s vociferóus •no,' rather f r o m no t y p e of N i s e i . mixed interest however, most take his 1 can. do.w I answer through such as riayashi never has rents he'll if friends, as ways, said, from h e r e things changed his he goes He some t r a i n i n g , see gone t a k e n up N i s e i t h e my K i b e i d o n 11 Frank, o n e who h a s to church. directly Most that a n d who h a s t o go o u t They says a l i i b e i , but and going here. but is in America, jitterbugging to 9, Frank ¡áishida Frank Uishida in August to ámerica. guaranteed Journal— August a j o b which w i l l whether but h e was defer afraid h e d i d n * t want if he taught Or if he isn't teach it in to whether on H i s own. 3. His deferred, he But the he s a i d he front. be able thought he coUldn^t should family he d o e s , to is 2 that wasn't, thought that deferred. he could still q u i t e make up h i s registered kasami He to be stick with his all 1943 J S a s k e d masami drafted, j u d o he might t h e Aimy. as whichever of b e i n g to be sent perhaps even him from t h e d r a f t . 9, u n c l e or go out and w i l l definitely mind a stay with him, fencs-sitter. B l o c k 25 meeting: For nion some that t i m e now i t block meetings the sort one seemed t o r e a l i z e of coersion marily a family that Issei a segregation. afternoon. argument than help For that selected arise as / / / too, was tatives. His nose things this as comments w e r e : large, held requested Tanabe, forty of "Planning Board the plan. Their The block represenits a few persons, representative Because was trouble sticks s u g i r u)." the Kaya. such or This decisions. of with yesterday The m a j o r i t y value pri- representatives oniy about the P l a n n i n g Board and Hakamura, f a v o r e d however, would c a u s e more the Every- t i m e was were u n n e c e s s a r y . too much/ (d e s h a b a r i ifishida, faji in/zconnection Yamamoto, to avoid as block t h e m by m a k i n g b l o c k doubtful opi- registration. p u r p o s e a m e e t i n g was representatives manager, present, be of b l o c k to The P l a n n i n g B o a r d , representatives that during it. such p e r s o n s was be held the problem attended solve including that which might this to into oceursed The m e e t i n g was n o t people f e l t u p h e l d by that and a N i s s i the conseasus should not problem. t o handle problems so h a v i n g has been of the at Journal— August arguments pro ana con, p l a n "began gested sions that to to l e a v e t h o s e who w e r e n o t the meeting. representatives be 9, 1943 in favor of The b l o c k m a n a g e r selected only the sug- to r e l a y t h e b l o c k which had a l r e a d y been made. He 3 deci- suggested i that the block/go along with sentatives only as a matter cided t h e b l o c k manager that representatives. other of blocks form. should in selecting repre- The f e w r e m a i n i n g deselect the Issei and Hisei Journal— Tuesday, Questions: At the August given first 6, Consultant Meeting. meeting consultants 1943, the purpose to f a m i l i e s leaving D o r o t h y Montgomery Washington of of August the 1943 6 the family the project Some o f 10, on t h e e v e n i n g the of counseling was and M i s s G i f f o r d , office. Augnat t o he e x p l a i n e d by M i s s latter questions from asked at the that time were: F r a n k Nakamura: to the people. will not "This 'Can it be closed?* D.M.i "Let*s guarantee s t o p and going, a r e Jsust the it's will becomes/ too small the possibility Gifford: keep of (I^xcept a n d two not step for in to f o r c e it. (Hote people ter the minds the unless any can Congress We States to vote centers of out. will can't Treasury t h e money. As f a r We a s we k n o w relocation center in a a r e combined. to force support. center B.M. You'll knows Mr. Myer/ center said however. have is to It the that. is first t a k e my w o r H this." in which are of a segregation be a s s u r e d of b e i n g the arguments out relocation, no f o r c e b e h i n d i n a d e q u a t e way c o u l d not that where a p o p u l a t i o n t h e WRA t h a t the people There's that of favor of centers how much a n y o n e agency. going a p e r s o n who h a s no means not the close this.) " A WRA i s We a r e / / X ^ X ^ X X / other the United other to believe be c l o s e d u p . « that t h e Army g o i n g . up t o C o n g r e s s same a s a n y we h a v e n o r e a s o n someone guarantee t o keep they w i l l because t h i n k about We c a n ' t t h e money that be guaranteed a s k e d by " guarantee anything. appropriate q u e s t i o n was this able stronger.) is to answered. stay The i n a cen- Journal— Mrs. cut August Tifti down. Is Giffords many the the two." allusion (Miss of "There tary jobs are being out. on program is of In t h e amount the of adjustment G i f f o r d p r o b a b l y knows statement is that be- cutting relocation this point work later, pro- although indirect.) to be frozen in this job over?" are going some d e p a r t m e n t s , that t o make a b e t t e r " A r e we g o i n g segregation that to f o r c e people j o b s was a p a r t to t h i s Nish Kumagai: D.M. is 2 reason?" reason wasn't See B a r b e r * s until real The move was t h e number gram. the that that t h e r e were more p e o p l e t o be done. down e v i d e n c e of "The centers tween "One 1 0 , 1943 but I t o b e work u n t i l think it's going the very to be end on a in volun- basis.» H i s h Kumagai* they insist won't go D. M. "When y o u on c h o o s i n g t o any are interviewing o n l y one c e n t e r o t h e r , what " T h e n y o u * a. h a v e do we to male that Sish: aren't choice for "But going D. M. it that they the a d v i s a b i l i t y o t h e r w i s e we m i g h t of have to them." was explained t o b e f o r c e d out "Do y o u say and do?" explain making a second chfcice, b e c a u s e and the people like (by Dr. at to answer Jaooby) the point that that we of a bayonet?" question?" (To M i s s Gifford) Gifford: don't of want the for sort, t o make alternatives such Aost "We d o n ' t then I don't to selections is individuals. ¿¡fyififL/ s p a c e . want If that threaten for there people. we'd have We m i g h t ar^ybody. But And we I suppose to designate a center choose a p l a c e which has are a great many p e o p l e k n o w how t h e a d m i n i s t r a t i o n is one of going the that to Journal— handle August it. There are going made h e r e t o accommodate evidently does not softly about doesn'1 an see the a big t a k e s made d u r i n g While D. M. "We a r e n o t E x p l a i n why they don't it*s the mistakes going important. ends with p thorough "If Dr. Jacobyi af&nily leave out that about appear." used It what (Dr. to get of making p e o p l e hand, he didn«t open up felt heroic back other t o Tule that center, Lake.) staying?" are t o move techniques are will On t h e He d i d n ' t gotten not for how he would to take danger other want to papers, convenihandle orders the p o s s i b i l i t y repatriation be on s t a y i n g be- stay just he would have out should saw t h e insist/ing specifically taking on f o r c e would not openly. them would Ke a l s o p o i n t e d no were done. anyone When a s k e d the that for ence' 8 sake. insists Ke p r o b a b l y the p o s s i b i l i t y on t h a t . / If responsibility such c a s e s that that said temper. enough r e a s o n s about, say he "mis- choice. a l l o w t h o s e who if thaght if t h a t many o f to is of h e r e . c a u s e he f e l t Best l o s e your then your to such a case, the on a s e c o n d There a r e that still out want she intimately t o l d which groups stay. segregation anyone not s h o u l d move o u t to is Jacoby And s p e a k of is insist I know of which w i l l to s t a y . very explanation." which are speaking lay. Don't "We h a v e b e e n and which groups outlined to Gifford t h r e a t e n i n g a n eva- she make a s e c o n d c h o i c e , JS: in she does registration," a c q u a i n t e d w i t h where of 3 space (Miss t o do a n y t h i n g . the danger stick. in." desirability evacuee having 1943 t o be enough t h o s e coming seem t o r e a l i z e cuee with to have 10, of from going and coming Journal— JSs August "Does going to another 10, 1943 4 c a n t e r mean d i s l o y a l t y to Japan?" Dr. Jacohy: choice has subjects their and concern "We h a v e t h e war for to l i v e I don't think the loyal They c a n h e / J a p a n e s e in the United ii> t a t e s i s not U 1 with still to they The f a c t can have that show d i s l o y a l t y to t o mean w h e t h e r they have America." a person is it's a v e r y g o o d way to put it, don't "Yes." entirely assured There dangerous adequate, in and troublesome themselves But dangerous?" explanation Lake. concerned. Japan Jacohy?" Jac©by: not p e o p l e who a i d disloyalty think t h i n k , Dr. (The for enough take or not ifford? Dr. is t o w a t c h out r e l a t i v e s ftji i n J a p a n . "Can we dangerous being so. implications. show a d e s i r e concern JS: is think children." a s f&i)rf a s you I don't international Gift'ord: that "Ho, official ones because people a r e b e i n g put difficult dangerous, pronouncements i3 a confusion find or n o t answering course, in T u l e Lake that in Leupp, of p o l i c y of here, the are dangerous and not Tule a n d \7RA o f f i c i a l s questions such as these clearly.) Obayashif country stay register If they of did the who a r e l o y a l f a m i l y made u p so, would they l o s e "Uo. 77e r e c o g n i z e might h a v e done t h e y o u n g p e r s o n s who o f work seme N i s e i a n d on a c c o u n t here. D. M. "Suppose that so f o r their their this mind a n y number (She has hopes of reasons. t o have a g r e a t of k e e p i n g to citizenship?" a y o u n g p e o p l e who d i d s t a y we a r e g o i n g t o do on t h e m . " to not For deal some o f Journal— August t h e young p e o p l e Gifford: possible he "Under to the "Is it I). M. "Yes, appeals board U i s h K.J is being "Couldn't from M y e r s . " D. M. "Do y o u t h i n k decided upon, it is talk ters will Murayama: to for at to that that the v a r i o u s pictures "Do y o u say "Sot during set here see the up. This out." answered? Segregation has t h e p e o p l e know t h a t . " centers are and d e s c r i p t i o n s that not because stay question And C o r k y K a w a s a k i " J o i n WRA a n d is time and be that necessary? think it ceiter?" up t o w o r k that's soon. a person a minor h a v e my o t h e r and I that arrive t h e canmentj I o f what i s men t i m e d of States be a appeals board set 5 parents." relocation there will possibly There the United own d e c i s i o n to a n o t h e r 1943 /loyal.) citizenship possible 1 7 and make h i s transfered of stay here with h i s Teranishii been in Tule Lake the laws to remove elected until left 10, like, of comes and t h e cenout with world." no o n e c a n c h a n g e f r o m 'yes' 'no'?" Dr. Jacoby: Kishj ter "Will when t h e y D. M. JSs It is D. M. after going to another cen- "Yes." explained a fanily t o come JS: be p a i d period." relocate?" "How a b o u t and not going expenses this "Will "As counseling before that the hearing matter. too l a t e for there be far as JS f e l t many stigma the is going that the to be individual c o u n s e l i n g was individuals. attached the public hearing?" is to the people concerned, here?" t h e y may attach Journal— a August stigma to We may n o t 2. staying here, want Consultant to, but meeting. We h a v e to be the public may." August M i s s Montgomery a r e a s k e d by those Some a n s w e r s : Whether sitting i n g r o u p 3 o r not bably has not The If 'no* menat, is is it. yet, as they known. registering. for to Miss cases of pro- Gifford. those Many a n s w e r s to c o r r e c t suoh i n d i v i d u a l s those Washington according hear group. will were efrors. fall in 3. divided will not be The s e g r e g a t i o n Garter be f i v e will questions compulsory to be given changed, T h o s e f a m i l i e s who a r e Mr. is hearing board will and a c h a n c e about table. definitely and t h o s e not the answer group not the i n no p a r t i c u l a r hearing d e c i d e d on t h a t segregation answering not is answers belong leave clearance realistic 6 7 around a Parolees 10» 1 9 4 3 and board three t e a m up a good b o a r d . is others to are on One from each on a h e a r i n g . to get i f you don't will group "Wfe've g o t p e o p l e who k n e w t h e the p r o j e c t t h e Denver There director, who people. consulted conference. d e n i e d l e a v e c l e a r a n c e now p r o b a b l y w o n ' t "Remember, know an a n s w e r , don't count. give an answer." Obayashis how a b o u t D. M . : the "When a p e r s o n transfers t r a n s p o r t a t i o n back "It'll be not Silverthorne. the board. centers. to carry c h o s e n by t h o s e who went in Tule Lake and a r e h e a d e d by M r s . Th<^ w a n t e d The b o a r d was stay i n t e r v i e wed. person from other probably Those to paid/" and to Tule repatriates, Lake?" Journal— August Obayashis D. M . : "Relocated person, "It's on t h e show a good r e a s o n , which it is Obayashii cape as b e f o r e . h e c a n come b a c k . " a big "Many b r o u g h t 1943 7 c a n h e go "back t o a same b a s i s answered—with 10, If (Bote he center?" can t h e way in if) i n can g o o d s . How can he es- confiscation." P . M.s "I think Cbayashis £ . M. to Obayashis t o Japan D. M. Qs has "We a r e get the United "By identifiable." involve trying inspecting "A w i f e after to be t a k e lumber l u m b e r may D. M . : We a l s o h o p e to it "Can a p e r s o n "Straight Gratings loyal that if he p a i d f o r difficulty. to get done in an e x p e r t the the war. t h e way for What the duration, category will they answer the crater. apartments." and grown-up c h i l d r e n w i s h e s States it?" but tn^ to remain will be return in?" question." Animals? 1). M, /wet definite. On sor e p r o j e c t s pets a r e not allowed. q. "Can you D. M. Q. "I think «It segregation. project. someone is ill?" so." was written Only 9 or Shows a g r e a t had bef»are—more tainly. Still. it who h e l p e d w r i i t e Q: if Manual? D. k . : ever come b a c k h e r e Student D. It. /Aone up deal grants. so f a r . of t h i s manual/on more p l a n n i n g thinking is Washington as a p l a n are 10 c o p i e s doesn't this in eve^thing. the t h a n we h a v e t h a n on r e g i s t r a t i o n , cover for Miss asking Washington f o r cer- Gifford, answers." Journal— August "ShouX&i 1 t JS. segregation 10, 1943 a n d r e l o c a t i o n "be k e p t 8 se- parate?" I), M. "Yes. relocation ing. If course "Is to is it? D. M. "I Gravess people think Social giving "I that if hard center?" then a n u hous- t h e y h a v e no r e - only and temporary t o come b a c k ? a person City really cash job." jobs and Kow d i f f i - couldn't get along, He f o u n d that his if it is one p e r s o n who difficult taking to c a - e of to think of in terms I t h i n k we n e e d n o t they can adjust welfare return of what hesitate to a center in if they it." "Do y o u h a v e I don't t o be p e n n i l e s s think f r o m t h e Army. H t « w i f e was oniy help." want. "No, t h e r e was S e c u r i t y Board make a go o f c o u l d work the k i n d of h o u s i n g involves really t h i n k we h a v e really need for to return." on what t o come b a c k . discharge Lake. the back." Murayama: cal it "In Kansas Graves: to jobs." assuring people cannot depends "Is could get D. M. relocation have g u a r a n t e e d j o b s through, "The g u a r a n t e e requested in return a l l o w them to "It ordinary cases, to come exc*~t himself. possible t h e y do n o t Murayama: he it offices Graves: cult interested "Relocation Murayama: only those team," Murayama: D. M. Send so. He This The d o c t o r he watched h i s soldier got wanted a d m i s s i o n expecting a baby. caning here. t o come b a c k ? " diet. I to questioned said that a mediTule the real t h e boy I found a chore j o b on Journal*a dairy, August a house for He d i d n ' t want unwillingness that. might be for shouldn't have put to face his back. get back." be "It job for t o go b a c k . Mr. admitted. eer 9 him. Homesickness, Holland thought The b o y w a s n ' t on u s . want He the job. We d e c i d e d t o pay h i s sounds 1943 situation, he d i d n ^ t able only p a r t t i m e the wife, probl e»s. He was Murayaw»»,' the something a welfier, but and He w a n t e d to f a c e hospitalization t h e boy two, 10, it that cooperating— s a i d he wanted He w a s n ' t was b e s t to to willing send him own w a y . " t o me a s though it's pretty hard to journal— Wednesday, f 1. tfjájá I s s e i On T u e s d a y and Jacoby interest ing later that it evening the on, was Isseis It was a w o r d was that of one at 1943 center of and in sort. word c o u l d not Dr. Jacoby ton office does not since used i choice be is of w o r d s , t h e word l o y a l t y in thought country. t h e r e was substituted said seem t o h a v e g i v e n t h e meet- The man w a n t e d 8 here of disloyalty this to have to a r g u e w i t h The p o i n t the to. Garter One man t h e word l o y a l t y the meeting c o n c e r n e d about they on l o y a l t y . could be l o y a l some o t h e r that the t o h i m c o u l d o n l y b e u s e d when and d i s l o y a l t y . matters are to use with to d i s c u s s i o n t h e y h a d no c i t i z e n s h i p that h e was n o t One o f according the question because know w h e t h e r i n Ward I I met segregation. Isseis, monarch (kunshu) loyalty the people improper to 11, s t a n d on l o y a l t y to d i s c u s s of August to for replied the people that the which on Isseis the washing- v e r y much c o n c e r n the a d m i n i s t r a t i v e to, ins- tructions. 2. Hisei attitude Luring floral an arts get people for the v a l ent informal conversation department out of M said: The the c e n t e r s . M segregation among I s s e i s , process. it the f e l l o w working thing T h i s was h i s While seems they're this in after the is to explanation view has been pre- t o b e b e l i e v e d by some X i i s e i s , too. So far, no u n d e r s t a n d a b l e h a s b e e n made. sisted lic that clamor. mised, but Howalt explanation d i d not s e g r e g a t i o n was n o t A pamphlet clarify of the segregation m a t t e r s when h e taking place because explaining in- o f pub- s e g r e g a t i o n h a s b e e n pro- none has been f o r t h c o m i n g so f a r . In the meantime, J ournal-- August no a d d i t i o n a l small column titled ing possibly gin this tomorrow. upon the "Rumor In other possession. while words, without ' except family 2 for are a start- i n t e r v i e w may be- the people are being having of all called the facts in h a v e made u s e of | Co-op that t h e Co-op had a g e n e r a l over £ 8 0 , 0 0 0 would be amounts to 7-J- p e r cent of The B o a r d o f D i r e c t o r s affair, clearing bungling and Mr. said the to have g o t t e n t o wield raoto is said of stock dead Assurance of without signatures influence of not any h i t c h . Mr. could be given t h r o w n out the done. rumors. have of at the general they were Matsumoto the Co-op, but they were is to unable assembly, Matsu- there wasn't a great t h r o w n out She of a the center c o n s u l t a n t s what that t h e y would not thought that t h e word f r o m one effect She that w o u l d b e much m o r e e f f e c t i v e Evidently in a c e n t e r . force people out she d o e s n * t best that know t h e p o w e r f u l She s a i d t h a t without the be to that it was assu- consultants thought deal warehouse. the people a center. in scrip. t o b a c k up ^ h o v e m e n t M r s . F r e e d was a s k e d by one o f rance which the whole that the Co-op, being over the charges of t h e Co-op announced to members, to put to have asked whether in and purchased with two t r o u b l e m a k e s a large part any t h e amount themselves Tonomura, assembly distributed were a b l e the business, liquidate of 1945 The h e a r i n g s Very f e w p e o p l e so f a r Informatloiibureau». Yesterday . Clinic." afternoon, t o maJic d e c i s i o n s their 3. i n f o r m a t i o n h a s "been p u b l i s h e d 11, t h e Government a plan for taking care c o u l d be hold will of than rumors not them— Journal— although August t h e WRA c o u l d n o t guarantee i t f e e x i s t e n c e was p r e c a r i o u s . t i v e argument was who c o u l d n o t take c a u s e of of Japan. fear that about social 4. This The she the p o s s i b i l i t y administrative meeting Freed said of presenting mentary movies. Leaders, the "This was to act Those p r e s e n t artist, as a n d was n o t the to be Barber, who was Mountain not that go o u t , to that it for he in charge said one dispell and was Phillip talked t o com® answered were months, t h e Ward to put some of docu- Recreational Cross, This this / / / / / / committee program over, committee. t h e p r o g r a m was it. this He h a d b e e n and seemed w i l l i n g in Phillip Heart to l i s t e n When J S a s k e $ f i i m why m o r e p e o p l e that thing. Chairman through sociologist. group of 10 Barber, o f America concerned with eight ex- i s A m e r i c a " Comic i t t e e was considered a propaganda from evacuees. unknown, help for this able D e p a r t m e n t , Mr. and J S , advisory The p e r s o n most advice ignored be- h e l d by- C o m m i t t e e , was p u s h i n g a picture the Motion P i c t u r e Uoji, people instruction. the Washington R e l o c a t i o n p r o g r a m of force that i s A m e r i c a C o m m i t t e e meeting- , A u g u s t first Oliver think effec- a center of b e i n g c a i . i e d 1 t o ge<eer by H a r r y M a y e d a . of of one agEoacies. to a c e n t e r , Mrs. by an out 3 because on A m e r i c a n p r i s o n e r s F r e e d d i d ndt security that would not themselves 1943 thing JS s u g g e s t e d acceptable because Wh«n a s k e d a b o u t back of retaliation Evidently Mrs. p l a n a t i o n was such a t h e Government care 11, it was d u e to f e a r — f e a r He thought that that fear. of t h e movie lie s a i d that the would some o f to ¿id Journal— August the project out directors by m a k i n g didn't came, were take risks, b e e n an I r. this likely because made stressing what ditions results. for Ke s a i d various "I of target is for in counterattack not lived centers "The dual, fear, within attack in out of of afraid to Tt the country don't achieve plans h a s "begun The p r i m a r y t h e unknown. of. committee: coordinates, with. that however, the t h e TEA. has fact order to to t h e camp The v e r y in hi© t a l k / fear of relocation bar- People know t h e con- changing decision a number Many on r a c e - h a t i n g in Heart they're for of reasonss removal s t r o n g e p e o p l e make a g o o d i n w i t h p e o p l e m a k e s yours&fef k n o w n . a firo^d p l * c e is to Committee start section comber' & p a r a d i s e , world is there the p e o p l e were divisions 'fascists.1 Mixing "I've to that they another. believe target. a i n one in When t h e movie program showed, points He p e o p l e be- ciaances. relocation.) k n o w e x a c t l y what relocation who l i v e d take t o make c o n d i t i o n s to encourage on t h e m o v i e p r o g r a m to to Ilr. Barber "The W a s h i n g t o n R e l o c a t i o n rier unpleasant. t h e more f e a r f u l they were that didn* t know j u s t policy centers gotten admi/ts he d i d n ' t forms the c o u l d be (liote ca* d e r the greatest within people 4 t o become cocky a n d effort in that 1943 t h e y were more l i k e l y B a r b e r was that he ir less secure, worse conditions believe the thought 11, for going outside. to f i n d to r è l o c a t e "but we c a n g i v e p e o p l e eight in because a K i p Van W i n k l e on t h e the is is fascists. Mountain to live It the it sort If months. is of like choice the advantage a beach- existence. people outside A center stay too long extremely of of the The in different. indivi- accurate Journal— August information. It's important to give a clear 11, 1945 picture 5 of the outside. "V7e c a l l e d this program ' T h i s t h e S o u t h "because pictures the Middle "We're this i t * d a poor calling 'est r e l o c a t i o n meetings improved. tatives 1, "I the for from various of t h r e e "blocks. of centers, be choice allowed of t r a n s p o r t i n g baggages f o u n d out at Heart to ask as I Mountain that e v a c u e e s how t o do a Jobs be they represen- stay will if of of to having being till iiovem- paid. I wanted a t h i n g and thing then it successful.M was J j i s c u s s i ^ n was h e l d a s across. stage, with The p o s s i b i l i t y or a showing the regular general in t o how t h e p r o g r a m c o u l d b e p u t o f h a v i n g a p r o g r a m on t h e each ward, or m o v i e p r o g r a m was consensus of opinion of running the discussed. the colonists gram s h o u l d be p r e s e n t e d w i t h an entertainment mind, openly rather p r o g r a m of fear of evident it It t o how think the presence first family will ignored country. A l s o , we a r e expense done 1 had the suggestions across. each 7e' v e Bast, for Advertising o f f e r e d Tule Lake, ber he put America*. section t h i s meeting p r o g r a m c a n "best can be and Is was than to announce resettlement. it films It was that value as a part t h i s was d u e c r i t i c i s m from c e r t a i n segment of decided that here should be h e l d that it was n o t o v e r , but merely anything further a p r e v i e w of some o f the following propaganda that information they were that to a Barber trying became discussed the films morning. pro- the the people could be the in of much o f Before in the That later. outdoor already insisted t o put t h e p e o p l e might be Journal— August interested in. He d i d n o t skillful propaganda, even colonist/ the not seem to only leaders realize other 11, 1943 the need colonists, whose h e l p h e was but 6 for toward trying to solicit. ¿ r a n k Crop?, fr<-ra t h e Information Office wanted to put over was a t a loss t o k n o w how t o go a b o u t the opinion gestions, into posters» the J3 felt out come b a c k return. go out then that least then they the f i r s t it campaign whose JS e x p l a i n e d If return t h e y were to a c e n t e r time—and hence p e o p l e would be w i l l i n g the clearly to everyone, stigma that relocation to take officers instead of whenever the likely the security that the they of should to his him the did not starting What announce out on to people assurance liked—at the center, a l a r g e number risk. could he w a n t e d he for what He Washington that offered than leave attached that giving dubious. on i n d e f i n i t e officer to afternoon. rather was would b e more d i f f i c u l t time. s e e why effect r e p l y was the r e l o c a t i o n it chosen c o u l d dome b a c k w h e n e v e r w o u l d b e much m o r e campaigns. out Barber's security. could s h o u l d go g o t t e n by points asked some sug- h i m what could be t h e r e w o u l d b e no the second were c o m m i t t e e was on a f e w v i t a l a person Otherwise d e s i r e d was results a p e r s o n who went he convinces come b a c k , there tell He and f r a n k l y w i t h him t h e f o l l o w i n g much m o r e that it, further to a c e n t e r . had decided to relocation. working on a e x t e n s i v e If while Washington, A small information asked whether to. colonists. matter that factual carry the program for v e r y f e w were w i l l i n g his discuss of a poster in he of couldn't this point elaborate Journal 1. Thursday, August 12, 1943 Information G a t h e r e d at 1. Station 2506, Are any boya August of 2. If 3. said, drafted? so." possible." in Tule L a k e , record if t o be c a n he is volunteer into c£?eaF?/ their application to change accepted? I n t e r v i sw JS interviewed but on his brother indefinite one boy leave c o u l d go his f a m i l y was g o i n g not being t a k e n at l e a v e Tule Lake, to the ^e wants said that the on P r e v i e w of T h i s JS attended Mr. "Lake Carrier" lacked thp 3n time of the because registering, for was plans if to there is some p e o p l e went in and re- outside, ne too. program the "This Barber Is America" and was p r e s e n t , which JS d i d not of Art Japanese, registration indignant, and see, others. a n d " S p e e d C h a m p i o n s " b o t h A$t interest yes" t o work application them o u t s i d e t h e ward l e a d e r s , opinion out "no, t o know w h e t h e r day and h a v e gone I s America p i c t u r e was " C h i c a g o , " presentable not going a r e making the b l o c k were ¡¿crimitsu, members. but How t h e y t h e p r e v i e w of a l o n g w i t h Art department in is the indignant for the l a s t others At t o caL i He was t h e b l o c k who w e r e most "yes" He repatriate, time. he answered and w a n t e d to M i n i d o k a . opportunity. gistered no." in Oregon, family a good from Block 52. answered "no, his 2. think "It's notified have been 1943 ancestry don't provided his Are p e o p l e answers 2. "I a boy s t a y s t h e Army, 10, Japanese F r a n k Nakamura: J S would have questions especially program, the movie too. but The which The first seemed second, ana JS agreed Isseis. Wartime Journal-Farming it August in t h e C o r n B e i t * was a n showed p i c t u r e s o f war this f i l m so seemed objectionable, to f i n d much f o r or it very against any of the leaders, taking the r e s p o n s i b i l i t y they the d i d not want sponsored for sponsor t h e C.A. he aaid down that the ing soldiers American some In which himself, is to against that if It ii t h e movie pictures "Are you p e o p l e words, the this time they might said to have said the ward l e a d e r s sponsor con- such a program which the people. that other set probably because of going he f e l t be made on a p a t r i o t i c that would turn program in farming t h e r e would be a g r e a t saying, could not s t a t e s " b o t h Art would n o t b e a b l e t h e commentator, very shown very according t h e y were sponsoring they felt leaders deal out help- of to that help appeal basis—not to arjyway. "Middle Isseis were soldiers?" relocate Isseis, that *ammn*to criticisms, to h e was h o p i n g suggestion each ward. Division of find them s a i d But anything for not the censure whom a i d not Consequently, Harry fflj/tffitf ¡¿ayeda, might tf incur but t h e ffirfjfyfj&jd on o u t ; ; i d e it, be blamed. favored None o f 2 p r e s e n t i n g such a p r o g r a m . forum resettlement. to for recreational a Kibei, for and were c r i t i c i z e d advocated ward programs. Yamamoto, They speakers B e t h J S and Art but 1943 picture, and s o l d i e r s distasteful. one of dition, interesting industry t h e p r o d u c t i o n would be d o n e . 12, little •Science to get "incursions entertainment and A g r i c u l t u r e , " t i o n had good and JS thoght information, was * o o d , the f a c t s in Science" and f i g u r e s both f e l t and i n f o r m a t i o n a l which but explained although value to soybeans would hnve b e e n from had Isseis. produc- difficult Journal-for August Isseis who d i d n o t H ciate. Teamwork"i Var P r o d u c t i o n B o a r d explained in h e l p i n g function of fanners work out their but v e r y much out t h e r e was it, although "The Wheat it dealt remarked very But in J a p a n e s e , Isseis used little to such farming. show l a r g e he d i d n 1t were showed in scenes of of their but are much r e s u l t they be Also, they and being Jiseis. of fact, only would into the p i c t u r e the use significant, of the beetfield3, did combines. lie s a i d If that movies effective would b e more because to g o / / from the movies. in a nee fellow there able in and interested farming w o u l d b e much more of Japanese the c i t i * » . Kibeish type later to b e shown, Tor entertainment wouldn't scale farming, expect gotten t o o much d i a l o g u e one As a m a t t e r Tamamoto* s comments pro- have educational both as possibility would not the i n t e r e s t e d many J a p a n e s e , with farming. large-scale not would have been very and would have they weren*t be because Isseis F a r m e r " was g o o d f o r information, it it 3 the blems had good i n f o r m a t i o n , of 1943 t o fltfitj&f a p p r e - understand English which 12, if they living on farms, interested in truck farming. The w a r d l e a d e r s movies h a n d l e d not a rroject want to basis take The p r o j e c t o r the by that they x r e f e r r e d themselves on t h ^ b u t d o o r operator program, either. to the movies, had been complaints and d i d not for want Clearly, this t h e y demanded that but they t y p e of the films ' O n e r e a s o n was a l r e a d y when to have on a w a r d b a s i s , stage. responsibility in his see decided on did not program. t o be included the r e o j l e satisfaction. the T.B. the paid There p i c t u r e was shown Journal-- August on r e q u e s t of ing p i c t u r e s lie a r g u e d not the hospital, as that a n d f i / f f l when i n ^ay c h i l d r e n came interested in toons c o u l d not hours to 3 hours Mexico to see be cut out. to 1943 4 Uninterest- C i t y " ware shown, only, and were Consequently, the car- The programs r a n f r o m / / f and c o u l d not t h e r e was no e n t h u s i a s m such cartoons t h e main f e a t u r e . 12, b e made l o n g e r . support ir. Barber Here again in h i s pro- gram. ¡¿r. Barber mentioned as a g r e e d w i t h Art and JS t h a t unsuitable should be cut t o l d him t h a t a n d he t h e o n e on W a r t i m e seemed t o f e e l He w a n t e d p r e v i e w s weed out t h e poor Analysis: that of it brings instance, do n o t similar their in out part the of to their different take the pictures. Barber own p o s i t i o n . TO ith put attitudes the people. over for H a r r y ¿Layeda/ want Art the program. to is be some considered. tant, and i s probably leaaers. of Er. anxious senses the psychological Barber to get fefels that some r e s i s t a n c e on is in a that and that program the part the preserve JS f e e l s h e l p and a d v i c e , for interested f - ctors his is of leaders, program should be h a n d l e d as a propaganda program, out to write-up responsibility The M o v i e D e p a r t m e n t own p o p u l a r i t y t o point avoided, order this The. w a r d r e c r e a t i o n a l want position. h e l p i n g Mr. t h e good the films interesting individuals. fearing o one had s h o u M be one o f of out. they ones. different program, farming was the rest The m o s t t h e way i n w h i c h it the programs is although of in the tries have imporhe colonist to , .Journal— 3. Trend The August 18, 1943 in segregation: s t a t e of a p t l y "by t h e affairs f o r m a t i o n has been / / / / office has been concerning a handful of A pamphlet on offices dispatch do n o t are to held the here, great the choice it is to like. discuss procedures for were interviews as y e t . Tn published in are centers, There they why are the but the Dispatch. these There segregation, the movie planning as t o how t h e p r o g r a m s relo- meetings relocation, Both People going when their stage, but and and a s h o u l d be exhibited. the interviews interviewing this pamphlet in things by this h a v e not addressed yesterday for night. procedure.// to d i s c u s s Welfare Department start this arrived only / / / / / / still being to in but informa- last is being of w r i t t e n up. is notices family on w a r d b a s e s undertaken order not the only but segregation for what uncertainty in of for counseling, of the Social places, the deal In information offices Japanese have never been e x p l a i n e d are An in- Consequently, existence has little the hearings three blocks programs very i t e m s when t o o h a r p nev«*r poster these information registering have been meetings they of d e s c r i b e d most different to t h e p e o p l e , little nature every meetings the from Denver, but team i s in to appeared in concerning start cation up i n f o u r of know f r o m news / to begin, So f a r them has been p o o r . was p r o m i s e d i t s way can he to the people. p e o p l e h a v e gone t h e meantime very t h e set The a n n o u n c e m e n t information is confusion. released publicity tion. Confusion in T u l e Lake one w o r d , 11 afternoon, at but are being afternoon. been 5 p.m. set to up. rushed The Fifty schedule no p r o v i s i o n h a d b e e n , .Journal— made August 18, 1943 11 to d e l i v e r ing. t^ese that T h e r e was no m e s s e n g e r viewers were a n d most of plaining in d e t a i l were to, notices to r e c e i v e d t o be c a l l e d but in they were t o make up centers their the together t o make their or to base in the consisting Issei B o a r d h a d r e c e i v e d word t h a t w o u l d come verify whether t h i s was morning, ex- Families centers of t o go which the trying and M s e i various selected it was a from b l o c k The a representative but to get representative and a S i s e i . to Tule Lake, The L e a v e O f f i c e was the choice. t u r n would be of a inter- time in information their t h e morn- t h i c k manual the t h e mealtime was whom i n Consul the c h o i c e of composed of a I s s e i f r o m each ward, delegates through in segregation procedure. minds, The P l a n n i n g B o a r d Board gone in The instructions to be given n e i t h e r on w h i c h or "boy a p p o i n t e d . their them had not evening Planning of the Spanish attempting to true. swamped w i t h work c o n c e r n i n g segregation and r e l o c a t i o n . with people trying to f i n d On out t o p of where that they it was s t o o d on both swamped the xf segregation question. According p e o p l e were fceing r e f e r r e d wandering Mary of a r o u n d *monf, t h e maze o f affi>es, offices them e n d e d up a t ' S t e W ® c o b y J - s Best's office. gotten out of to other as In t h e m e a n t i m e no to where p e o p l e t o S^nii.mntn. and p e o p l e in office were t h e Ad B l d g . or even at Kr. i n f o r m a t i o n had been s h o u l d go f o r certain types information. The w h o l e confusion is and l a c k of t i m e and a l s o division is trying probably due to l a c k of to handle its to lack of planning coordination. own a f f a i r as best Each it can, Journal— and f i n d tary that t o o much a t of the Caucasian night till the questions evacuees. time is gard the task. makes night trying What ytfai i s most what is t h a t Mr. copraination on a d e s c r i p t i o n Best is difficult, of each s a y how much h e c a n c l a r i f y director In and a r e not minds They clarified. tend s t a y i n g or that return if allowed to loyalty to Japan—in if and i n this this in re- its probably upl - e r was w o r k i n g , supposedly, and it the picture is for difficult the possible. y to are project the a person it, impressions that existence left that their adequate information. of centers is he would not be other a center loyalty other words, procedures a l r e a d y m a k i n g up leaving without that wrong m e e t i n g go u n d i s p e l l e d , And p e o p l e to assume precarious, a n d by the project q u e s t i o n s go u n a n s w e r e d , the Howalt-Best about t o some f a i l e d miserably new t o up others. the meantime g o t t e n at sat needed at on, j ^ X to night repatriates. consultants going ur» center, the answeres urgently Information Division has The f a c t of 7 secre- and M r s . to formulate w e r e a s k e d by about 1943 up on a d d r e s s e s by him' — that information worked probably M i s s r i r f > r r t g o m r y , / ^ M r s . i ' Tce d , last 12, Bw^eee^ii staff was c h e c k i n g late other times. t o c h e c k up on a d d r e s s e s , self. of even a n d a member before Last August to U.S. it's implies better to disstay Journal— F r i d a y , August 13, 1943 1 . ¿j.r. A k a h o s h i on f e a r The B l o c k M a n a g e r many attitude "Most of the people is if it side of the only center, to in them in on the outside. center Tule Lake ties for may n o t be of to it they be enough jobs They will idea is people to not be a l l o w e d Bote ul9 Lake. Add ing believe that they afraid that a large course, of the to strong this if if "be take to Here case it would could them a r e they once are that many entitled to in of go afraid of the t h e y go out This Most of the to.M allowed motive in there t o camp a g a i n . are of opportuni- reservation. they care t h e y go They that to family centers than out- allowed jobs. many o f economic be not i n which believe the fact they will if a large that t o cane back stay will this Tule t h e y go other but JSs that family. accepted without to in t h e r e were work eveiyone, told on t h e to get In the control support behind. also stay k n o w who w i l l also afraid They seem t o want Analysis of a r e more generally 1944, to raise work, condition. they afraid able for to are w i l l feot b e a b l e remaining seasonal weather are stated a p t l y when h e stricter d o n 1t They was m e n t i o n e d those that. June, They of They a r e not Vfciry d i f f i c u l t out l they block to have t h e "block w a n t a matter a center. case another in after 25 seems in his camp h e r e . another Isseis of B l o c k o f fyip p e o p l e Lake stay of staying those in remain- indemnities from t h e U . S . Government by v i r t u e of r e m a i n i n g i n a c a m p , and can o n e / s t a r t t o i m a g i n e t h e s t r o n g h o l d t h i s p l a c e h a s on marry. -ww. A slip A most in translation serious slip in translation was made in the recent Journal— isoue of August the Japanese Jacoby1 s chart c l u d e d Dr. issue most appeared seems ing, and i n an leave dispelled. ciearance that "Persons the gaibu i.iu o kyohi so not to be in al- slip the people. only (Gaibu in meaning oxihand In translated great in the in the Japanese It should have been unless of of a in the to other as ^ s e r u monofl . " English translation is translated* mono ( T h o s e who w e r e effect confirmed explaining i.ju o kyohi the mistake The f u l l understood is never only a p a r t centers. relocate mislead- t i m e was translation c l e a r a n c e " was serareshi Just serious. This s p e e c h was v e r y that inThis to confuse given at of one w o r d o n l y . relocation). not out the d i f f e r e n c e of 1943. s e g r e g a t i o n was denied difference translation, a matter 10, scheme slip 2 process. h e a r i n g w h i c h w o u l d f o l l o w movement " t h o s e who r e f u s e d While The to f o r c e p e o p l e centers, segregation August impression 1943 t h e - J i s p a t c h, which t r a n s l a t i o n of R o w a l t 1s e f f e c t i v e way scheme of the a/diabolical t h e wrong adequately of on T u e s d a y , p a r t of a like T s u d a 1s Mr. section 13, refused translation is the mistranslation the fear of the people can is known. At of the present the greatest Having lost most time it number of of their of making a l i v e l i h o o d turn to liar conditions, is their especially h a r d and have former i s more t u n e of bring up y e t for Isseis said is possession that homes w h e r e feel and a great of too ¿Id several means refami- insecurity. This t o work v e r y small of y e a r s b e f o r e to l i v e under e v e n a w i f e who c a n n o t I s s e i s fctao have a number former the r i g h t deal fear insecurity. their they might t h o s e who a r e support, the greatest economic and b e i n g r e f u s e d Isseis t r u e of to can be work. children t h e y can This to , .Journal— "become August 18, 1943 independent. who h a v e n o because children to other the security of to try to means. They wcheme to get take this said: "But that the They to be f o r c e d they going the laws that that t h e WRA w a n t s y o u obey after the you fuse it thwt to fear everyone to According that at various another some camps. or n o t ? future As Then o u t , you that forced you clearly to be going or n o t . They they to l u l e out one you doesn't can't are going to a center in to JS*s attention, if are going to be come b a c k to Tule Lake, stay here in the in a p o s i t i o n first where of implies: If sent to Tule Lake, to be are back t h o s e who re- asked whether be going a r e going to/forced then they are out. If t o be c o n s i d e r e d dis- Lake. t o , r . l ï a k a m u r a , who b r o u g h t slation put only t o go spying is relocate, and r e t u r n e d they its to determine whether the U.S. of b e i n g are going relocate refuse loyal this relocate means they a paper the m i s t r a n s l a t i o n to going sign of cling duration. is o f the the law?" Viewed w i t h mind, to f r o m thera by fear out t o obey refuse the of possibly desire for and outside t o t h e m or segregation out. aren't if the ftiseis away a r e going mean t o work t h è s e and least security the people going fear come For at able an agency which has been doing suspect they are might a n d some t h e camp, best still meet. reasons,/Isseis v i e w t h e WfcA a s Is.,ei support, they might many They date to t h o s e who a r e of p o s s i b l e harm t h a t discrimination many Even 11 the people asked then are to relocate it's just place, because they are going this slip in concluding or to as well that fâfô/jty/ that they don't t o be tran- they want forced t o be out. Journal— The August seriousness Isseis is of this evidently not l a t i o n f o r Mr. Kurose majority of WRA h a s hearings will change, wne out that the they drafted. leave are relocate to draft ^ then will to they suppose the fear the The to have actual Maay are of percen- going here to that if was v e x y say of being they According "Those drafted. great to at leave fcrs. Kurose o f y o u who They're and the and Some the chance said: sons Isseis iriséis. stand is both some t i m e b e t w e e n S e p t e m b e r This t h e popu- t h o s e who a r e for drafted. stay "I of s a y how m a n y . version be 4 h e l d "by some sector what draft t o have your Niseis this year." to of recent intended going of on t h e m i n d s possibility The m o r e l a d y who cent in Tule Lake, difficult 1943 l e a v i n g Tule L a k e . " is worth watching. Tule Lake, H i s e i s a i n some recently, be 80 per which weighs is if remain it's fear Iliseis remarked that be ^/XX/ and t h e f e a r s realized the people will estimated tage will slip 13, going December/ time of the r e g i s t r a t i o n , ^ but willingness sonool or to to work, in deterring to say, but pdople. she don't on the liow g r e a t / t h i s people it is from l e a v i n g a factor that Mrs. Kurose probably say8: Army, a f t e d t h a t many Niseis expressed their 4 r t a k e t h e ^ c h a n c e w i t h t h e d r a f t t o go o u t t o a factor "Gf course, .but when want same them t o stay at son w i l l be want of like "agitator" draft i s difficult c o n s i d e r e d by many o n e f a c t i o n when our them an in her not "You d o n ' t sons in the e d u c a t i o n , we this." registestion drafted? is to l o s e to g i v e in a place the time the Tule Lake is being we d o n ^ t t o l d an of exemplifies t i m e comes subject t o a d v i s e her becauoe her the fear Mrs. block to Sato, who came register h a v e any son August 18, 1943 11 , .Journal— j í ) í éf a g e t o go s t a n d our to school or other saying? being side. "Biséis scheduled Whether but this /irs. Hi s e i s 4. is true is know t h a t a general leave is just them t h a t or are if the them o u t . " using it has t o come b a c k as good as too big of workers This t h e WRA h a s made The a r g u m e n t runs: t o a camp when t h e y And t h e WRA i s u n d e r h a n d e d means o f cut on b e i n g down on the feel not i n an a t t e m p t to get and belief can't t o many is streng- people trying the to VRA so h a r d from the to suspicion out—since of f o o d and cut more p e o p l e the t o come b a c k "Why w o u l d free not h a s # been they able getting people quality that It to get are that A f e w who have a good r e a s o n , " relocated. attempt still they will improbability. to count that and N i s e i s t h e y c a n come b a c k " i f "they true t o come b a c k ? Isceis again. the camps. of among b o t h the center possible to aecertained, it allowed to is t o go drafted?" t o come b a c k send anyone back get "Is leave t o a cental* once t h e n e d by night» indefinite to if/s been on possibility along," belief saying: drafted." has not r e l o c a t e be were are afford x. i s e i s to be of them a r e G o f y e was the center it explained last Sofyes -ome of have or n o t attitude elder We c a n ' t that are going the f r o m t h e Army ^r. 'no.' a n d on t o p o f rumor thsy l e a v e these to answer those aJqjwSd^e be allowed get next Monday." who a n s w e r y e s There the »yes.1 thejy a n s w e r e d I s h i z u k a was a k k i n g Will if if got centers evening out who w e r e d i s c h a r g e d to l e a v e "Everybody's has brought Yesterday recalled other How o a n y o u u n d e r - position." A r e o e n t jLfájLyLfkfi/. r u m o r the to work. to down the relocate. number Journal-- August 13, 1943 6 LJL&J Anyway., t h e WKA h a s perhaps even p a r t i a l Since afraid it is of, security that able t o /ij6/ s u p p o r t be they t h e camp whersrer t o make it t o go o u t But the that J S spoke that ter it is if take matter time difficult b e e n no freely with Berber ment to a c e n t e r . was made a n d it is the to to c a s e of of It return a s due He of assur- riot being violence from could the trying return all good second point. to to f e a r , they said he could of some stress was but to t h e cenwilling so f a r they there can officials difficulty the has return connected angle. issued no o n e w o u l d b e a l l o w e d in Tule Lake the people have to out. interpreted 'Washington n e v e r /retracted. impossible the saw i m m e d i a t e l y return other the that only go them would be sort, stress that reason t h a t he would b r i n g the meantime to right time. S i n c e he t h e p e o p l e know t h a t effect It being of would be have been claimed later clarified, was n e x t In continue to a c e n t e r . never out to l e t to some s o r t in primarily without they to. on t h i s a conference instruction are t o come b a c k o n c e p e o p l e outside. it out that many more campaign people many m o r e p e o p l e w o u l d ven- they wished, Incidentally, that or or evacuees. in case that relocation return of were a s s u r e d a chance up a t or the complete t h o s e who r e t u r n e d w i t h o u t second to k r . whenever to was that assured more p e o p l e not g o i n g evacuees an or i n g e n e r a l WEA o f f i c i a l s fact that care they wanted hard for the outside, a family were of to venture taken JS b e l i e v e s if t o win insecurity on t h e they will Caucasians. to confidence economic ance out been a b l e t h e y do n o t want a s s u r e d of ture not Sut since continued return to that the to the to announce- mistake believe t h e camp f r o m Journal— August indefinite t i o n has good leave, _ talked Office andhandling sible t o come b a c k y o u «just owift asked a person tacting the come b a c k to say: getting that they have sent good r e a s o n s spending to contact before this was: "Can The a n s w e r asked: "Yes, the relocation *-rs. Freed answered: relocation the they and h e came r i g h t straight that com** b u c k they adjustments are just small had been if or but be matters. want them and pre- back." get answered The question to a along." admitted tell JS then without to a that to help center?" center?" to people. such persons w h i c h he w o u l d n ' t t o camp. going city, tell officer you people the to a center d o n 11 like in con- so you want So we interviewers. hannot not We d o n ' t so JS "If officer same when s h e outside, back pos- without we d o n ' t a week should be able stay was they're so e a s i l y . officer "Yes, officer make a d j u s t m e n t s the But "Can a p e r s o n who comes b a c k contacting The say, c a n come to her if it was: t h o s e who h a v e r e l o c a t e d c o k e b a c k was: t h e Pi* c e m e n t that answer the relocation they question yesterday in three persons t o t h e camp. ¡»Irs. F r e e d ' © a t t i t u d e was have notion. relocation stay. back explana- they to a center Her the can cane back right 7 you have a good r e a s o n . " contact you 1943 "You o a come b a c k of M i n i d o k a , grants, t h e n coming said: officer. let if working Stob s a i d c o u l d come b a c k uidn't they She official return In f a c t , along—if They'll t o know t h a t people get the gates 'You go b a c k . ' and t o camp. the the mistaken relocation. relocation to they can to a g i r l back from Chicago. if rate, which m a i n t a i n e d ... xwfo d a y s a g o J S sent any a l w a y s "been t h a t reasons, •Mr* «* ' /jfaf At 15, We d o n ' t that. Let's want In 9 c a s e s not just do if to say out of say: 10 Journal— 'You ' c a n came xiere is i s being if clarified p r o g r a m more c a r r i e d on a t done 13, 1943 back.(t t one p o i n t r e s e t t l e ! ent a r e being August to keep would a c c e l e r a t e t h a n any o f the present the people the the campaigns t i m e , but ignorant on that everything this;one point. « 8 Journal-- Saturday, August 14, 1943 1. L a t r i n e philosophers From t h e r e a r on war window J S c o u l d h e a r t i o n by T a n a b e and one o r of conversation of individuals get "...American tles, and they interpret they that is two o t h e r s n a t c h e s of Isseis. r e p e a t e d wherever ne*s is say that all lies. in the to pieces...There*s no c o a l in Russia t h e Germans to w i n t e r . . . B o t h A m e r i c a a n d E n g l a n d want R u s s i a knows soon...American propaganda broadcast coming painful for of to lies 2. ¿libei •"agata, the c h i e f to that a r e bombing them over t i r e both because to have them the Russia^ pretty Japanese the broadcast so g o o d . . . I t said his in $roup that must b e last awfully to concoct a i n Group in f a m i l y Anywhere f r o m 15 show up f o r to JS with a w o r r i e d ^ h i s name was t o know what II, application h e came b a c k a n d h e was came the Leave O f f i c e if to say P e a c e may come i n . . . D i d you h e a r cook, He w a n t e d t o see Tr e n d to lot worry he were 3. to bat- broadcast..." and i f that their They tide ineffective Amsrican p r o p a g a n d i s t s Group T w o ' s . Later is this. r e c e - t i o n was n o t M r s . Yamamoto h a d h i m t o go type type You h a v e o p p o s i t e way. but night?...th^ same losing they a r e winning. Sicily, keeps this They're are winning at out. It* ^the togbfc&er. A m e r i c a n news and Germary conversa- to f i n d t o go for he on t h e l i s t should do. out t h e Dr. look. of JS w h e r e he was Jacoby's r e p a t r i a t i o n had been t o l d JS in a s a t i s f i e d sort told placed, office accepted. of way I. interviewing to 25 per interviews cent a r e not of t h o s e who a r e coming in for suppose them. It , .Journal— may b e I>ut that what intend August 18, 1943 11 they i s more l i k e l y to leave come i n f o r come go to all trend and choices centers have cane refused talk, the or refused have given that they do n o t wish to l e a v e Tule L a k e . of wish to return t h e c a n e * flpfif i n s i s t e n c e Some s a y no that reason they wish x they have for going to return repatriation esterday J 3 was invited eight or n i n e tions for to s i t simple of that o n e p e r s o n who d i d n o t t i o n 28. The m o s t family their to ask A f e w who choices of testimonies centers, to the to Japan a n d - c o n s e q u e n t l y The fr/ overwhelming m a j o r i t y staying their are bachelor friends center. F r e e d met some of resistance Isseis. h e r e and Others most say to see that take out Opier, the interesting resistance discussion. but point Tabula- t h e r e d i d not f r o m Ward V, or cases. The were r e v i e w e d . families registered w i t h Dr. the were made, There were none reason program. a defined few q u e s t i o n s lengthy i n on t h i s ward d i f f e r e n c e s seem to be a n y . of is to WAttfMf/fWl&tMt to discuss cases There t o Japan and a r e w i l l i n g afternoon Mrs. Analyst, the all wanting T h o s e who g i v e to give on to a n o t h e r papers. Social for to majority immediate family as segregation either the enlargfcji^ t h e b a s i c seem t o h a v e v e r y the time. minds not in and r e a s o n s to effect of their d e c i d e d upon b e f o r e h a n d . of in have to centers than in some f a m i l i e s who do n o t unmarried c h i l d r e n . aspects notioes t h o s e who come tbward wanting as parents of that Of of i n c l u d e more on o t h e r is their l u l e L a k e h a v e made u p choices to a c e n t e r definite receiving interview». in with unit a r e not probably for in Tard V had at least answered 'no' to ques- was most of the that , .Journal— cases of any August 18, 1943 resistance or X X o n l y express any very few family opinion the bachelors were b a c h e l o r at all. d i d not felt h a v i n g any f r i e n d s that treated as medical workers There Dr. cases seemed let to just aryone on D r . w e g r e g a t i o n p r o g r a m would g e t that being allowed far bachelor to s t a y . as he could belonged deal of f " P S the Japanese not 4. these the Opler anyone to if for try in America, on o b t a i n i n g wa¿> d e c i d e d that further d a t a was a n a l y z e d was desirous aid of to f i n d it to reasons. t h e whole became matter, that stay them to about of so great leave. likely the were probably s e e why a to be future of evacuation, and c o n s o l a t i o n a tabulation cases that that concern for who w e r e b i t t e r social good the opinion to get be although the medical He d i d n o t little they also to s t a y , I s s e i s who w a n t e d anyway. with veiy come i n a n d o f fore in It He t y p e of p e r s o n s who w e r e most relied heavily Japan. centers. of hand of attached that Opte r * s p a r t out or they were stay without not some d e f i n i t e l y might JS expressed s h o u l d b e made irresponsible, Dr. see in Tule Lake, They w e r e . t h e who Isseis, that them s a i d allowed have Freed aid felt if there because to be a f e a r known stay and be difficulty would not t o go some o f who d i d n o t Mrs. Opler in other t h o s e who w a n t e d he f o r e s * * a ties. would b e w i l l i n g t o some f a m i l y g r o u p , , s i n c e Isseis 11 from t h o s e who did r e s i s t a n c e b e made betrends of p i w r i t i n g in resistance. up a r e p o r t on t h e trend at hearings segregation. Segrega t ion According t o the Hearings to Dr. question: Opler, t h e r e were "Do y o u want Japan resistance t o win the the war?" He Journal— said August that being even the interpreters a s k e d and m e n t i o n e d required that t o answer practically Opler said report. that he Issei the the question to answering the One be mentioned to win, Dr. such a f a c t question. in his t h e r e was JS couid c o n s i d e r a t i o n was q u e s t i o n by N i s e i s they had r e c e i v e d . 4 s h o u l d not t o know t h e r e a s o n why c o n s i d e r e d an u n f a i r treatment 1943 When J o mention g i v e him a good e x p l a n a t i o n . was to wanted Japan could not He was c u r i o u s s o much o b j e c t i o n it the party such a q u e s t i o n . every that objected 14, not that because The a t t i t u d e of of many negroes o f d e s i r i n g J a p a n t o w i n was b r o u g h t u p a s a n ^rs F r e e d thought t h a t t h e i n d i v i d u a l s were not analogy. w i l l i n g t o commit t h e m s e l v e s f u l l y o n e way o r t h e other. From Dr. Opler JS received the b e i n g made d i f f i c u l t for f r o m »no 1 He a s k e d basis at to ' y e s . ' test the their win a person t h e h e a r i n g was b e i n g t h e Denver conference loyalty change of the/ of a n s w e r . to the Social held. side a person D o r o t h y Montgomery of aawer it from 'no1 would be sion in over that on what said that passing determine to on desired to in at this a few simple minutes. and j certer be as where * h e r e future lay, five p e r s o n comes a would not centers, Only one's in about said to •yes* other than h e r e . such as where was answer part % loyalty. From a n o t h e r that to was instructions before calculated it Analyst The ia t t e r individuals Which that change h i s they had r e c e i v e d t h e war was p r e s u m a b l y a persons impression report changing difficult were less q u e s t i o n s were as confu- asked, the whole proceeding •• \ * «. V ^ ¡ Journal— \ 1• Konday, August 16» 1943 Kisaiyaras On S a t u r d a y K i s h i y a m a what h e was he wants wife» He going to do. to stay. wants t o go t o r e up the way w i t h to 2. said another as indication that I s h i z u k a , Mary, center, but Kishiysma to appear for to his deesn't. ¿W/KW/ came. T a n a b e was He was not too dogmatic surprised that to have t h e mess his crew he d i d n ' t . Tatsuo BzV a hearing Tatsuo is a Kibei feiiow, and g e t s alone, one w o u l d His not want suppose f r o m * no* with his wife. that sons to ' y e s 1. is drafted. hearing, is a If t h e two w e r e they would l e a v e the reasons their his He Gofyes— however, One of for to a K i s e i . along well to have T a t s u o went he married wife' a family—the i n Tule Lake. I it if undecided to Mrs. f o r Mary that to quit h e was T h i s may h e an notice people. threatened that According f)Lftfk// a h e a r i n g when ¿vishiyama said have that Tule Lake, decided to the p a r e n t s Consequently, he d i d not When a s k e d what reasonable change h i s went on a t stay do when answee the aearing said: "They a s k e d me w h e t h e r said, »Yes* . i n Tule Lake, wanted to '^hen I They t o l d me t h a t Lake were not ¿lock t o win t h e y a s k e d me w h e t h e r a n d ,1 s a i d stay, I wanted Japan said 'yes.' that hen I didn't many p e o p l e who w a n t e d not, I wanted they want or and to stay a s k e d me why to be to stay I drafted. in Tule disloyal. 71 T y p e A B l o c k 71 i s i?rom o t h e r blocks, some o f whom r n o v e u i n b e c a u s e t h e y w e r e no l o n g e r / / allowed to in There their a mixture own b l o c k s . of people is a small group of vocal stay old Journal— Isseis, is August 16, 1945 who l i k e found in to active as a r e more active quiet. They boiler house than are of the people at the He was smart of time and one enough tration t h e ^ilock Maqger unnecessary things that people in he s a i d . he has been It difficult is responsible, by r u m o r s Several that there earned but others the people The any t o be t h e Japanese legal aid. t h e b a c k g r o u n d most of suspicion and During as the center definite the quieter knowledge. of agita- organization. two p e r s o n s 71 h a v e b e e n center having o p i n i o n and the regis- a n d by d i s l i k e d by o n e or in Block topic. from the meetings his of the who a l s o made money of b e i n g a r e no s i g n s of of are disturbed resistance to the program. the centerp. over. is relatively lawyer the r e p u t a t i o n he They the current the f a c t . respect suspected the assertion t h o s e who w e r e l o y a l that who a r e in front in Iki, aem blocks. 'milked* stay calling to say whether weeks ago people he to conceal Although sufficiently segregation to t r o u b l e by block, block a former source, however, not although is c o m p a r e d w i t h I>r. caused this other a v o i d becoming an o b j e c t smart t y p e o f men e v a c u a t i o n by r e n d e r i n g b u t was tion, in discussing the block to enough, in congregating latrine, time of He was Recently the ones This the few in Block 25, of According the war. active o f t e n Been oeattle. the but t h e most The B l o c k ¡ ¿ a n g g e r / hatred. about every b l o c k , t o be a s the talk 2 A f e w days of were going ago some o f this vocal to be g r o u p was thrown t h e m went w i t h Germany, and that R u s s i a h a d made a therefore t h e war last telling just separate could not of around t h e war b e t w e e n J a p a n a n d A m e r i c a was c l a i m was out about peacb much Journal— longer* buted August This rumor way a l s o to Radio Takyo. mor was a d m i t t e d by Another rumor, had some was started which lat^ in Block seemed week. He was a s k e d sign a paper, not s u r e what w a s read English. c o u l d not fashion be that Sven easily it and l e a v i n g at written if an to £50,000 them. He a s k e d which he on i t that It the pjijk to d i s c u s s the matter su have m e n t i o n e d : / is /(/X/a i s o you can stay PPOse^to here if A group t^ng/ This can be interpreted t o keep from going, i n t e r p r e t a t i o n may n o t jjL0jLjL e seriously. is e / b ^ they be c o r r e c t . of due they The also a after steward says s %'o a s a means e v e n when such a paper stayed behind you l i k e . " it in such a o f what "It Ke uld not t o g i v e up a l l they were eating to do. written signing s i g n e d when re- interview). he thought careful the he i n d e m n i t y w h i c h was people be called. it, false. which that an ru- disturbances, refused was those of to be b e c a u s e he c read attri- s t e w a r d of (or 3 this but the messhall would have or $ 6 0 , 0 0 0 the a hearing understand. the project claims in that group cause expert c o u l d mean a n d was enough, to 71 a n n o u n c e d to appear wat innocent 1943 however, the vocal On F r i d a y ceived a notice to of a desire last in ffard I I t h e weekend, a member earmarks of megshall Over heard 16, that tfe/yiofe// #e trying should, to get although Members of the people this vocal /see g r o u p came to Mr. Kurose to ask his but to avoid place, saying that his he wanted daughter had to/the taken notice trouble, that and got the paper came to away b y with her. The n o t i c e t h a t h e h a d r e c e i v e d was f o r t h e f a m i l y i n t e r v i e w . S i n c e t h e n t h e r e h a s b e e n no c o n f i r m a t i o n o f t h i s r u m o r . Journal "but August it ger, has is said promised via continued into the Planning to very eager to look the vocal all hoping about. receiving it were respect afraid to appear of when that in close to fellow ' s for I t h e movement be surprised trouble." 4. Want that if Otriers Japan also Ito, as a whip. ne p l a n t e d The m o s t the at at that inter- either) But some to sign. received They t o r e a d what if it point, their the meantime, or not bag- it were they did was afraid receive it. (Kenji smart think (of M the a d m i n i s t r a t i o n : intelligence—he's don't they interviews, appearing the made by members again to have the h e was required no one w b u l d b e t h e r of spread p r o d u c e d any m o r e . block people, source for it reports the m a t t e r . s i g n a t u r e was sure and he telling f r o m t h e s e c o n d day sign notices to have the statement the project to that Many of one that a n d was be r e q u i r e d Said i s s u e was leaving to Evidently, t r u t h of 4 t h e B l o c k Mana- According the block, the 1943 on t h e m a t t e r , supposed s i g n e d was n o t away persons gages, in hearing--no to be was h i d d e n might the is Ito, Ke was a l s o h e a r d into group the t h e paper for someone news on v i e w or he a tr&rd r e e t i n g . story of Kenji the matter. Board, same recent spread. tb have been c o n s u l t e d to look rumor a t to 16, is have the Block Manager) But I don't organized, story I like but I him. wouldn't just to stir up have branded him as an "agitator." t o win ? There hp* been a q u e s t i o n as t o why p e o p l e r e s e n t e d having t o be a s k e d whether w i n or not. seems Isbeis are It desirous that the hearing they wanted Japan marjy N i s e i s of h a v i n g at to a n d p r o b a b l y most Japan win—at least not seeing Journal-her of August lose. Henry K a i h a r a ' s c a s u a l a California center, "Of our but he course, other off if we d o n ' t Ja™»r There for liow t h e y wanted ¿Irs. being tney nave own f u t u r e w o u l d b e w o r s e in so. Later can go o u t . being and t h e boys however, the c e n t e r . drafted if of b e i n g are The b o y s t n e y go drafted to keep p e o p l e it cleared, parents, of against application a hearing, out re- regretted subsequently The sent tends t h e boys They h a d made c l i e d up f o r which During i n Ward V) was and were The p o s s i b i l i t y factor the family. (living t n e y may b e is to an nere. Ishizuka Ishizuka is a Kibei no', probably She h a d her ther she aad changed 28. She stay, said and very t o leave that do before band. living boys w o r r i e d now a b o u t answered »no, to another t o l o s e b e c a u s e we his t o go o u t . clearance center. 6. M r s . that older and d i d not worried because important Japan the whole f a m i l y are glad because another to t h * war. a r e not are a bit of going typical of." feels several they leave he lost registering because thinking probably family are gistration is want to think words, Sayetake He is 5 said: own f u t u r e In 5. l.isei. remark 16,1943 easily. the Saturday. ner mind a b o u t said that disloyal, Issei. They She was t o l d her Evidently although She had from ner hus- asked t h e answer she c o u l d n ' t The B o a r d ®are. t o an on i n s t r u c t i o n s she h a d n 1t . that she Ji«st s h e was hearing married to n e r wheuestion a s k e d why s h e w a n t e d go o u t that a n d make a she might t h e y were not she had i n t e n d e d have convinced to have Journal— herself August classified as such. t o l d "by J S a n d G e o r g e 3 . take. If she have her stayed h u s b a n d go out and a n o t h e r on what th e husband alone if that leave if s h e was 7. Mr. Mr. it sooner told or t>an that h a v e made a mis- she w o u l d n ' t the family earned here. be a b l e to another later, center, and l i v i n g v-ere i n T u l e L a k e . she might have seemed e no i c e . to to With c o u l d not She in her 5 s h e was e a r n a l i t t l e money. i t s way, 1943 one live to .But on feel she re- s h e would have on t i i ^ 6 u t s i a e would She that leave, then said anyway. Oda Oda p r o b a b l y not highly get along with, about tention. He see the quieter intelligent, lie i s not the war, is children to/ represents e d u c a t e d or talking in to s h e went b e much h a r d e r his she might s h e h a d made a m i s t a k e torted to that s h e came home, in Tule Lake baby as When 16, wne o f not a n d who a r e / on t h e George S. quiet to ask Issel» too d i f f i c u l t trying hie tneir to always to attract at- children, and conforming and JS of t h o s e who a r e v e r y much c o n c e r n e d f o r are type bide. opinion and de of dropped the and segregation, other boys. "I'm I to be wanted son to stay hard in drafted to that He h a s one now i f it t h e Army now, one by o n e . t h e ¿ r m y or he's not of they had in t h e Army to work. if I weren't and I It's don't t h e Army/ that pll suppose his several draft. other i f my center. My sons eldest place. brothers possible—no it's the want my t o move f r o m t h i s said at for different to another going t h e Army w r o t e a n d out son said; t o go o u t son t o go says son i n He willing h a v e one sons //////¿// The should matter try how because Japanese are , .Journal— August 18, 1943 11 discriminated but Japanese them for treated in t h e Army. are not hardly wanting t h e way The ICetos a r e a b l e ever allowed to s e r v e they have. in to. to You c a n ' t t h e Army when In Walnut advance, Grove blame they've they had been to attend a different school. I f we h a d n ' t b e e n e v a c u a t e d , n ' t mind t h e i r s e r v i n g would in the A r m y I ' d b e gl&d t o them go, against but it m a k e s y o u mad when y o u ' v e so m u c h . Ever Japanese. price, oCven when I went I couldn't I've lost ail money h e r e , en,joy anymore. •he y o u n g e r over anyway t h e war pital change but until I wouldn't wtand t h e war I trie c h a n c e I haven't don't forget U n l e s s you is come, mind g o i n g would be w i l l i n g all to look are over—I more than a son don't think send Japanese to Japan I'm thinking Army in red. ly feels to i n the He's make in t h e hos- don't that want to a n ex- airway. to a n o t h e r o f my sons b e i n g t o go I same My w i f e a year. the tell. a I can't to r e t u r n something. can I was the can get half after wasn't She w a n t s they ;r e w e r e g o i n g you n e v e r ship will thing. there others. everything. that comes b a c k w o u n d e ^ r unit, go b a c k so the in America. iiadn 1 t come f o r s t a y i n g by m y s e l f c a s e he lost t h e whole there. because t o a show a n d p a i d a s much a s I've c h i l d r e n back education of it small hope of a f u t u r e w o r s e t h a n I do a b o u t if to f e e l see discriminated I c ¿.me t o .America since a d a y when I d i d n * t h a v e been I to drafted t h e Army ten or center, in but I just one by one. their stead. f i f t e e n y e a r s more can't 1 After to live. f o r a m i n u t e t h e s o n who i s away f r o m h o m e . parent a fjifi/Lfflj y o u c a n ' t t e l l how we I s s e i s f e e l . Journal— Tuesday, 1. Condition on the j j i r . Oda g i v e s which "Conditions of typical on t h e of outside condition on t h e thing in action. like that. and other Many o f making their living to cities say are dangerous as said to can't expect M r s . Kaya that he it. the keto in Chicago jobs. they c a n ' t many o f get them a r e a letter the g i r l s went of t o ~ew York ana couldn't that difficulty George in g e t t i n g good here, Takahashi a job. You jobs." rearing had her hearing. Ker center. iJven i f t h e war before they know t h a t in homes. position is: One "You've of is these to J a p a n . they to t i m e of 'no* their Bven can f i n d however, chance want a that it in another to stay a few if they employment are oppor- rationalization r e p a y an o b l i g a t i o n Japanese regis- t o ques- a n d he d i d n ' t t h e y want of M r . K a y a ' s got the t o answer take over, returning tunities At husband decided, t o l e a v e T u l e Lake and kaesu). in a out husband had a d v i s e d her out, doing T a k e t a went I hear was b e s t forced but to g i v e U i h o n j i n s the family. more y e a r s reported finding know why t i o n 28 b e c a u s e h e was an enemy a l i e n split girls I received didn't He went Japanese. s o n was d i f f i c u l t i n When H e n r y having recently her Japanese as w a i t r e s s e s , Beven w e e k s . 2 . M r s . Kay a ' s tration that Isseis. t h e woman f o r prostitutes. a d v i s e d him a g a i n s t also f f y t f t e / j l / blame Consequently, to work. f i n d a job for is They they g e t . f r o m my s o n who I can't them a r e working on what out You -laces are f f t f f t f along 1943 outside t h o s e h e l d b y many Two J a p a n e s e w e r e k i l l e d by a woman w h o s e killed 17, outside an account is probably August are ungrateful of his (on o (o n shirazu)." , .Journal— At August 18, 1943 t h e h e a r i n g M r s , Kay a a n s w e r e d following "How i s y o u r As "I Q: "How i s y o u r As "&o, Q: "Do y o u want As "Go want feeling now t o w a r d Q u e s t i o n t o c h a n g e my a n s w e r husband's to t o go another was a l l that The a n s w e r ?8?" , to yes. ,M the of or go I go o u t s i d e hearing. a outside?" But she or not asked: center?" was: will be g o i n g out the if same a s you ^ r s . Kay a f e e l s 3. out center Whether happened at people b* forced her the answer?" center. That ing from 'no* to another d e p e n d on my h u s b a n d . " of in yes." will "It questions manner: Q: "Will the 11 here, with the added possibility wish." that s h e h a s made the right choice in chang- answer. J o h n Mat s u m o t o John for talks himself to Java« 4. B e s t 1s Sunday of in returning this t o Japan b e c a u s e he f i n d s country. to clarify some of t h e Colony recently. the made a One by taking source of The According though it did the he might Dai, go some the had h e h a d w o r k e d on ideas that Best around before- excellent largely speech stage floating prepared who d i d a n then, to have outdoor have been t r a n s l a t i o n was t o Ople r , include that mistake, the precaution hand. s - e e c h on rumors h a n d a n d d e l i v e r e d by F a t h e r it. that speech evening Best of thinks/i no h o p e been job avoided translated the speech, had himself. beforeal- , .Journal— The August 18, 1943 s p e e c h was started in p r a i s e d for their asked Then some of not for. the right understanding, mechanically, as it rumor that Tule Lake he would be that Selective In ?To m e n t i o n , 'no, saying not that Lake if left still of their to another Isseis later This to on. WKA w o u l d b e k e p t issued 'no, if to t h i s was agency, that being no' if those rho would not they of they were a signed entirely in ans- statement be drafted. satisfactory, remained in Tule d r a f t e d was much l e s s t o u c h e d u p o n was considered q u e s t i o n was answered t h e doubt raised it The a n s w e r was confidential that s h o u l d make their explanation recognized disloyal t h e J a p a n e s e government choice without than the t h e American government possibility and went if t h o s e who the Japanese unfortunate i n rhhe m i n d s of t h e documents and to them, fear. by i n an (h i m i t s u) have access that disloyal would not to person Tule Lake would be drrffced e v e n governments by a false. center. T u l e Lake would be according if hut a n d t h o s e who b e c a m e was n o t felt r u m o r w h i c h was government. way, the answer the chances Another that The a n s w e r that had t h o s e who a n s w e r e d the people t h e y went they were h o w e v e r , was made o f Major Marshall other words, because loyal i n T u l e Lake would be Tule Lake. wered e x p l a i n e d was to b e l i e v e T h o s e who w e r e age while custom to do, that drafted. clarified, S e r v i c e was h a n d l e d by a d i f f e r e n t t h e r e was n o r e a s o n exempted. c o o p e r a t i o n was rumors were the public was The p e o p l e w e r e their was C o v e r l e y ^ left and and the major w i t h a view to convincing Trie f i r s t tone. 11 In that and of b e i n g the people words, the considered they pledged to a n o t h e r of foreign the other some loyalty center. In Journal— a way, August 17, 1643 the people were being w o u l d mean that the loyalty U.S. or Mr. question. the fact don't want shouldn't fact ^r. sire n Mo t They if have Issei doesn't that this answer said that have to. ¿¿one o f t o go a n d 2» m n o t to Shibutani the the people-- the reac- he d i d . is their try minds Be^t going to keep many of the them meant, Bo we h a v e Tule Lake a documents them a r e then s u r e what but to keep he the secret?" similar, the laws the United disloyal 'disloyalty' apply on and indicates a de- fence. disobey to the had reaction would loyal to indicates thegr they on t h e or thing/ p e o p l e h a d made up s a i d what them a r e 'loyalty1 loyal other avoid. ve always b e e n l a w - a b i d i n g . none of either flip are leaving stay to leaving one way or from the Japanese government, Kakamura's to if to l e a v e . t h a t we be c a l l e d Mr. But to very mean when h e iiaa my secret? a secret the or blocks t h e y w o u l d go willingly. was reaction did Best would be kept that This i n one "Whatever They w o u l d b e Isseis—wanted Akahoshi's t i o n found staying t h e y h a d made a c h o i c e to J a p a n . especially told that 4 of In that States. to J a p a n . to the Uaited the On sense the they other You c a n ' t Isseis States, use because it can hand, t h e word just them." sees the i s s u e more clearly, and speaks with confidence: "Then G e n e r a l heard this Terauchi from h i s very passed through lips. He saids b e a war b e t w e e n J a p a n a n d A m e r i c a , America to h e l p America and be l o y a l the v 'If ^est Coast there should I want y o u J a p a n e s e to it. I You d o n ' t in have Journal— « t o worry about those of August Japan. who a r e i n .America h a v e was v e r y this unnecessary Leave in J a p a n . ' in mind. because would have b e e n b e t t e r The c e l u c t a n c e part of either want to sit that those leaving t o Japan left or loyal the to Japanese said, of course, the people. It where the center or disloyal s t a m p e d or it In is the convenient. they The considered in is considering other words, would be handled on lesv i n g ^ u l e Lake other. fear disloyal some o t h e r w a y , or untouched. answer which raised cation that choice in determining whether T h i s was in answer asked their answers to would be individual actually those virtue (if of the t h e y were law-abiding, States by v i r t u e chocie in matter. of On the in II. Those fact or not. people to were change This one way be- other that Three hand, it being groups in they had answered to be considered fact. other in Group IV, I s s e i s ) which asked that indi- t h e o n l y o n e s who w e r e i n Group and were United at c h o i c e was g o o d democratic. because were 'yes' being given a hearing. the to whether hearings. granted hearings to a question to stay the to the individual from ' n o ' sounded very t h e r e by as and allowed the danger wanted was fitty cause w e r e not later r e l o c a t e before being on its they to a question emphasis it questions t h e p e o p l e . / j t / 6 would h a v e f r e e being were 5 unsaid." the on t h e f e n c e , 1943 t h e war that disturbed avoid being should have been Another had sure contemplating one of What M r . B e s t to be c o n s i d e r e d They w a n t . t o themselves I'm it left I s s e i s who a r e evident. the fighting 17, if fact, 'yes' they 'loyal* They w e r e b e l d g to no/ the Journal— August .lisunderstanding lowing i n Tule Lake. ception »yes» like, of in Block the factor Best at of said if But individual per- own 'yes' desires everyOi e or you does not least. stay o n e way o r you answered extent to that fol- speech. in his by h i s stay the the wanted to d e c i d e and you c a n 25, but said, choice/ this after influenced right. of w h e t h e r misconception many p e o p l e all individual i f you general—not 71 r i g h t had a c t u a l l y is *ec*rdlees y o u c a n go in Block 1943 e v i d e n c e d by t o q u e s t i o n 28, Best everything w o u l d h a v e an other. s c o r e was U n d o u b t e d l y h e was of what /ell, Gross this r e m a r k by a man He h a d a n s w e r e d 1,1 on 17, the 'no' like." seem t o be on t h e m i n d s choice has been of re- gistered. One o f viewers t h e most is: common q u e s t i o n s "Do we h a v e t h e one h a n d , there are s h o u l d be f i i r a and not individuals by not This a t t i t u d e was "The A m y ' s whether they that in like it to the wishes this. or asked the of stubborn the o n e of People not—they that get On t h e WKA type their of own way administration. the interviewers: a r e going might inter- 'yes'?0 we a n s w e r e d they c a n ' t e x p r e s s e d by behind if is p e o p l e who b e l i e v e give who b e l i e v e complying w i t h t o go that t o b e moved as well understand that." ^r. K u r o s e , who i s his duty ?f to America, I don't agitate here. think to stay It for that even wouldn't be cooperation with t h e 7RA a n d d o i n g said: t h e Government though right they should let aro^oxpefff • ^ p e o p l e who t o "go t o t h o s e who a r e g o i n g stay quietly. , .Journal— The August 18, 1943 11 attitude waiting. On the ministration other, unless if enforce the people they that can be when to one h a n d , called. it says fear 1 6 by JSf in his is a number of h a a many was g o i n g to b e had p r o p e r t y ter. If he went tried to be be convincing we h a v e f r i e n d s f r o m Walnut that insistent and of 3ome bluff entirely bluffing t o go must interviewed an i n d i v i d u a l ^ho go. on A u g u s t is wavering came i n a n d p o u r e d want to leave to be Tule school taken out which care of. He h a d jk/jk$L a n o n l y SO if h e went h e may b e as the to a n o t h e r forced cen- out. interviewer H e lis- Ï / W * t o go a r e /X/^XX/ Grove. I'd like farming t o . go nearby to and where Some p e o p l e h a v e (f f a m b a r u ) we w o u l d n ' t Granada have t o l d me to Lake." only ovement take out in h i s an o r g a n i z e d move of T u l e Lake such a movement. tallized not is move its scheduled could, we h a v e family woula a bayonet. is center as he the down a n d n o t of it drafted w h e r e my w i f e ' s It On that //^///.jé/MÁA//^' "If to. stored in a Japaasse to another h*» s a i d , l e a v e Tule t h e ad- Washizu, in California. a g e who m i g h t i f we w e r e of s h i p p e d up h e r e a n d h a d of "But," t h e power administration / / t h e WRA. things years tened quietly. watohful r e a s o n s why h e d i d n ' t Lake. He and p e o p l e who a r e toward of to sit a good example of attitude the that Yukichi that t h e y want the point bluffing Others that that decide/ to he fear anything a r e moved a t t h e WRA i s seems they they have a f e e l i n g helpless feel of many p e o p l e t o make M r . Evidently, block. to r sist segregation "Taehizu a s u c h a move h a s n o t supporter crys- , .Journal— August 18, 1943 11 A few, state that especially t h y t y wi 1 1 n o t unless they are up f o r interviews, will not ¿here is whether there have probably a doubt leave Such a something Two Best and were centers over. important in t h e minds of is the and do n o t they show don't they the people as possible into there if of alternative is effect or not. for segment to Unless measures—pert h o s e who a chance for mishandled, questions p e o p l # would not j o b s would be and for The Mr. Best The a favorable people. if in circumstances, others that s t a r t e d by a s m a l l situation, that new c e n t e r made. any case of an or anized the popula- could develop into serious. other that hoping may b e p u t voluntarily, r e s i s t a n c e feeing tion. under Still resistance clarification haps punitive—that do n o t Isseis, to move. still a move o u t f o r c i b l y moved. an o r g a n i z e d is bachelor to received c l a r i f i e d by & r . out of centers, t h o s e go i n £ t o stay behind were p r a c t i c a l l y a s "key till other segregation guaranteed jobs is in the that he men." some a p p l a u s e a p p l a u s e was n o t sign. be f o r c e d available t h o s e who latter which were He is for l o u d or winning the remarks extended, but the /confidence it of was the Journal— ^ Wednesday, 1* H a n d l i n g of resistance In Tule Lake taking ing a the group of come cation of t o leave their unless a d a m a n t / and can the other because going still extreme three removal if The s t a y do so a t to the their situation be forced stay. In tion Others or of move w o u l d b e is list t o make it are going is or of indi- a r e not going less into leaving. out to merely stay clear The were say that to crisis arises the project those to is to people be allowed forced evacua- segregation center to of moving the idea force them t o segregees a n d so program. s h o u l d do a l l evacuee to against: the segregation of leave that they will To p h y s i c a l l y director thp a s s i s t a n c e that say Instructions the proposed of situation third possibility them i n t o p o t e n t i a l the whole purpose the t o be f o r c e d some o p p o s i t i o n defeat to p^ln an t o a l l o w t h o s e who want to these people. turn families group are holding unclarified—neither to leave to by this are scared from Tule Lake has been c o u n s e l e d the part is they of h a n d l i n g own r i s k . should be p r e p a r e d f o r power ways second diretor this t h o s e who w a n t e d the Administrative "The p r o j e c t on out. not the Some i n that unwill- is of is stay. One who a r e on t h e necessary. that different c o u l d be p o s t u l a t e d . cent resistance. be p e r s u a d e d to ones b e i n g and p e r h a p s t h o s e *ho program resistance 20 p e r forced are segregation »loyal* definitely are they have heard Roughly will the mi^ds t o be a l l o w e d leave About of they the This interviews, the extent h a v e made it- center. people. in for to so-called t o move t o a n o t h e r do not At the 1 8 * 1943 segregation resistance t h e f o r m of large to August in If his leadership..." a Journal— The August second p o s s i b i l i t y so wish is the Lake is were allowed would have Up stay 3ome to this When p e o p l e would not be f o r c i b l y to leave/ if t o or member of The make a not, matter cie a r " Opler a n a he f e l t their it the remuval list of the responsibility Opler insisted wouid stay merely because ultimate good they a l t e r n a t i v e has been of should to, they were evicted. the On selected. they would have the removal told other list they were medisal definite. on M o n d a y . that Opler t o move that they hand they whether ca^es had they or were a the project Opler felt would have of realized that on s t a y i n g a t belonged in Tule Lake, W / W allowing them t o stay, after JS discussed director thct i t saying and all. cost it was "very thus that if all relieving the people with t h e r e were ail the would be b e s t to l e a v e , threatening should had d i s c u s s e d s t e r o words from Washington, on pfffiCfl facilities claimed, tnts matter on t h e m a t t e r . eviction. additional leave family. on with Dr. t h e r e were to a p p r o a c h i n g when t h e a d m i n i s t r a t i « n policy with Best, schedule Tule Jacoby want unless split is, ad D r . ask whether t h e y w e r e on t i m e was its d i d not it it s e l e c t e d a s fyi/i a third to/ they they now. the in if because Sven as others stay 2 center when f o r point to 1943 another Also, e v e n when wanted or center came If to a l l o w the© to reasons, to another program. i n 2a r g e n u m b e r s , center. unfair.to move to anyone administration to be f i l l e d . t o be b u i l t segregation the segregation expected immediate allowing f r o w n e d u p o n by would upset be of 18, some p e o p l e who a n d *ho j t f a i & f he Best forced really saw t h e p o s s i b i l i t y But those insisted that of the Journal— people August c o u l d not be told if they belonged h e r e , to stay. Anyway, t o n would be that since in favor of would think the through thought that He as t o what would happen that if pull t o make was if l a r g e groups afraid they JS agreed stay danger of not people d i d not might get it the people up by gested if know t h e into agitators interviews by not their number or to should But that to leave. who d i d n o t w ich want state on their their time. the wavering to cane group could be t h e y be told out policy. that the If the other words, it could be easily whipped to leave. be d i d not serve with would in for penalized come i n to cut them l e s s not J S sug- to cane centers they did they In interviews. dealt big. everyone This would in for too if the wavering g r o u p , making not broken punative measure, people if that threatened he p o i n t e d c h o i c e of choice a he thought c o u l d be be as 7/hat they got not felt serve leave. they should heads would was guessing Opler a n d he administrative resistance, given interviews to agitation of it group alternative their policy the people t h e w a v e r i n g g r o u p who r e f u s e d being in the best enough, they wished. ciarify^he organized that program resistance, and n e i t h e r l e a v e no o n e w o u l d h a v e invite segregation c o u l d b e b r o k e n up b e f o r e eviction could the wavering i n Washing- They w e r e of k e e p i n g s p o t t e d soon that with forced in a movement t h o s e who w a v e r e d . organized could be they to stay policy. - t a r t e d to l e a v e , others o f was up b e f o r e they course 3 to the people such a l i b e r a l putting t o f o l l o w the middle start that v e r y much c o n c e r n e d a b o u t successfully. 1943 they would be a l l o w e d that he d i d not 18, down for the susceptible The residue toward the end Journal— of the August segregation program, moval list loyal c o u l d "be t o l d number had l e f t . remaining l e a v e / because policy they list be d i d not that to choice stay in of permission investigation. the advantage and state allowed "J to good. their to Opler of stay thought Ke s t a y would choice that thought 2. stating told to The on the except I n in cases of split medical and only be g r a n t e d as stated t o come centers, would that in for in case other a it result is to interviews they are not in Tule Lake. their the that S h o u l d be p e n a l i z e d not of small T h e r e w o u l d b e no a l s o be colonists redis- have a v e r y good r e a s o n the matter the the t h o s e who ¿ e r e in Tule Lake. It. could and in Tule Lake. families.jLfifL/^UMl^f^t/^U^i/ cases 4 considered group b l u n t l y belong say 1943 t h o s e on t h e in Tule Lake, a n d who d i d n o t allowed individual stay to of t h o s e who w e r e the wavering t h e n would be removal not Then to in when most 18, ideas JS e x p r e s s e d were t h o s e who w a v e r e d for not coming in f o r in fairly their decision interviews or choices. J o h n -M. Cook Cook h a d b e e n c 1 l e d on takes that lation of a n d was to he had a l l o w e d t h e D isr. at e h . ready up t h e TD, properly. Opler ten matters see to f i r e resign because close that the carpet the out. to appear he them. of C o o k ' s if was in He f o u n d translations in for t u r n blamed M s attitude. Best was t h e TD o f f i c e Cook h a d n o t w e r e done correctly trans- translators was ready prepared i f Cook c o u l d n o t down t o that t h e mis- the Japanese The w h o l e TD s t a f f necessary, sent by B e s t handle to it straigh- takoicare and to to i n good Jo urn a l - style. August 18, 1943 The resign. translators Opl er set were t o rev^ev/ a l l this to 3. and t h e up a t r a n s l a t i o n b o a r d t h e PB o f f i c e ) according retaned official staff 5 did not (presumably in translations. All Opler. Mizunos The ¿ l i z u n o s of B l o c k 2 5 a r e t y p e of family. rest the family of one of the changing the is are if answer. he information t h e Army, b u t planning to stay stay or not, 'no' person, and a m 'no, one no' thing, to f i n d was told out that J.izuno, came to J S stay not. He h a d /fyíffltfjáj. but had make it cancelled harder was a ü i b e i , quiet. and JS that to it for but find spoke t o l d him that t h e r e was nothing that Ray w a s . ¿iso his t o be another tion drafted. center papers. center a while better if bother, answer he a afraid his father could cane back i f he he wished b e c a u s e that it find out a m c ;r uld papers, m i g h t tffaL released. He a n d was Tuie draft, rather Lake, it. but Eddy that about b e o a u s e he d i d not that than Tule Lake. family hesitating to ' y e s ' could repatriation the was to stay. h e c o u l d do a b o u t explained he might to to l e a v e JS Also, being son-in-law to t o be a f r a i d of from ' n o ' of contained good E n g l i s h , Yukio, Hay, family family his he would have h e h i m s e l f was n o t want his thought fairly s a i d that changing hie is t a k e n out interned the M r . M i z u n o came whether b e c a u s e he his he out still on ¿ ¿ f i t / n o t t h e whole f a m i l y would be a l l o w e d Eddy S a s a k i , or he whether if Japanesy in Tule Lake. insists leave Tule Lake. office t h e more in For should of a son s o n s who a n s w e r e d his drafted There typical even if h e went t o o k out that repatria- he l i k e a He c o u l d go o u t he would c e r t a i n l y to the t o work need other for Journal— money in ' order know w h e t h e r not want want he would he This out. f o r seems said f«nr of his he that 'Eddy relocate, 1943 waited retaliation But $£0U k n o w what he 6 to s i n c e he did J 5 a s s u r e d him t h a t the t h e !7RA w o u l d n o t on A m e r i c a n of e d d y ' s goiing t o a n o t h e r a i s a a v a n t a g ernes. 18, of m a k i n g a n y o n e l e a v e who d i d He that to yet. t o h a v e c a l m e d most realize "But children. forced camp j u s t intention to l e a v e . people to t o "bring up h i s to leave #RA h a d no August center fear. not dare force prisoners. He was n o t seemed entirely said: people will say about a person leaving parents." seemed about care to, t o b e more w o r r i e d about JS T s him. answer to what t h i s was people that of the family, a n d h e was now l e a v i n g not through h i s own c h o i c e . Another would say Ray c o u l d because question take he had that he a s k e d was: "If I should be d r a f t e d , wife back h e r e This desire for parents cult to T u l e and f o r for do y o u t o want relatives stay to to u n d e r s t a n d , t r e n d among J a p a n e s e . Sven N i s e i s they wish their to look stay with after "It's was: " to c a n s e n d my stay with t o g e t h e r may b e but it will parents if on - e d d y ' s s i t u a t i o n was certainly c a u s e he d o e s n ' t JS pointed I is a ail diffi- definite sincerely at their say that possible them. Kay* s comment said: that Lake?" m a r r i e d sons Caucasians to think out vrant that he s a d i f Eddy to i t H / interesting. can1 t go a t He stay, be- all." c o u l d come b a c k a g a i n . Ray's answer Journal— / "Yeah, if canter, I were him I ' d I'd time I got stay tired realizes that about, t h r e e of J:ay i s y o u n g y e t go August 18, 1943 to Arkansas, the farthest or the place, and he'll craves miss four I'd months, come b a c k and about the again." fun and a d v e n t u r e . out 7 He probably on s o m e t h i n g by s t a y i n g here. 4 . >Tary K i s h i y a m a Mary had h e r her if She aidn't Mary know. JS stopped her in making h e r JS a s k e d her what and change her asked answer. they had asked her. said: answer, askecyrf me and I that I not.' That's that don't I would 'no.' c o u l d ¿fcj not to p a r t JS said if said wanted "I Sunday. * s u c c e e d e d "They said hearing like Then t o c h a n g e my / / / / / t h e y a s k e d me why, say. Then f r o m my h u s b a n d , and 'no' and I t h e y a s k e d me i f I I answered, "Of course, all." s h e may h a v e to go, and she said, care." JS pointed out that h e r husband might not like it, and she retorted: "I can't JS believes to leave. 5. Father that ture war. to has come b a c k investigate been g i v i n g findings. is is g l a d it is true that she has Dai M i d d l e *7est his she J F / a t h e r Dai He h a s it'.H help He h a s the best lie f i n d s speeches for i^rge cane f r o m a two m o n t h living before to various for too in the groups, the conclusion the Japanese cities condition trip that to prepare for the Japanese. revealing agricul- the o v e r c r o w d e d and not postconducive Journal-- August t o decent living. centers on and not good f o r he the he encouraged ground specifically t o go o u t He that life th^lnaividual stated because of showed c o u r a g e that evacuees no h e was n o t in giving 0 the unnatural tachiba kara). urging the people Kone the less reasons. his 1943 to leave i n camp was (J i n d o politcal/ 18, speeches. As M r . lUshida said: "He certainly h i m an i n u f o r it because ^ future his of urging A lot people t o go "^elieses the Japanese it of people will out. is But in in America. he's call doing interest You've got to of the respect guts." doing is working interviewing in w i t h Gple r the in the morning, and is afternoon. Sug a s a w a r a s Riley's father t o l d JS that center; but if courage. really • f a t h e r Dai 6. has he came Riley an out. go o u t ^e too f a r thought east. sawarais looking for a job take his family. is willing a house for should start in shoe the his to ware o f f e r e d 85 overtime, work f o r boys in He family. school shop h e r e , w o r k e r s who went but out the actually shoe He that is it another would be and f o r thinking better a place that find, four and were of a r e now s a y i n g to another that the They promised o n l y £ 2 2 a week a n d n o t them changed who working disappointed. an h o u r , / ¿ / / / ¿ ¿ J * / to children, He h a s b e e n o f f e r was Suga- i f he can of h i s and //)&/ have h e a r d received to He C o n s e q u e n t l y , Mr. t o move c u t in September. Two o f shop t o go in a laundry on a g o o d cents overtime. interview yesterday. had a d v i s e d him not t o come d i d not in for job. they won't go enough The out Journal— August no m a t t e r w*at willing hopes t o go happens. out and Mr. Sugasaaara, take a chance t o "buy a f a r m i f t h i n g s go 18, 1943 however, on t h e is 9 still outside. He well. 7. Kazuko T nahe Kazuko Civil was thinking Service from coming, her. She wanted saying could t o , but Powers, She said that $1800 a y e a r Kazuko friend registering because out of a c e n t e r if tion. He s a i d certainly t o look Tuie 8. is if at in he he d o e s . s h e may n o t that she would ofit of after her folks able that she Kazuko could, but she East. t o Washing- stay till t o k n o w what She s e e m e d father he'll sense says to she to be insists be t o s e e him f o r His for if on thrown a r g u e d w i t h hirr care. proportion. tf Her Kazuko be her t o C-ecrcia, w h e r e afraid he d i d n ' t all of g o i n g t h e Army. is Japanese a loss t o go on a the place t a k e Kazuko of marry tog him. not stayed here to not the thinking offered she wanted a C a u c a s i a n boy with ity discouraged was p r o b a b l y was w Lake however, associating over. think in g seriously he it she h e r s e l f t o work a t to S a l t sister, that avoid s e g r e g a t i o n was has er from Washington, t o n , D.C. do. Ai job. of g o i n g that the dura- of f e a r that if is she wants she c a n ' t stay in ^ake. Opler J S went went to to s e e Bob B i l l i g m e i r , the Llberson's a iseting / / / X ^ w h i c h was A few l a d i e s were Irs. Opler. She room where Dr. place, there h e was no-t h o m e . a l r e a d y when J 8 .was was, He a n d i-iv% B l b e r s o » t o o k h i m t o to be h e l d at Mrs. immediately Opler but h u r r i e d him off saying that Opler's place. introduced to to t h e bed- he probably wanted to Journal— August meet Br. Opler. The m e e t i n g was a care of b a b i e s , b u t part to g e t year, it to unfair similar but the ground, Opler that for was the that the A plan had been administrative build use According started nists, several but first is center. •'-ake. fUnny there are The second the is first i really with don the do n o t stay if which cases, out of the of centers against If want of upon they it. Her personnel the supposed of other family the one, and t o have colo- ladies even second choice go t o go anywhtere giving to l i s t only the to avoid. however, more p e r s u a s i v e With is leaving of Tule o f t e n menof else. say They like, to go. one o r The to a c e n t e r they rest can be second c h o i c e against go w h e r e that interviews. giving a they cannot can't wish is resistances i n s i s t on i n c t want t o / s t a y I f t h e y h a v e c a n be p r e v a i l e d play- should have expense the r e s i s t a n c e they intention the s e c end o h o i n a case t i o n e d a s Tule -uake. they will the t h o s e who come f o r resistance they rise at two t y p e s the In choice, stories get to g i v i n g n o t i c e d among hr.ve a the firebreak i i l b e r s o n , ^ r s . Huycke she d i d n ' t / a general in that together. to Mrs. once. 9 - Resi stance In it colonists one Opler* s the grounds t h e WRA w o u l d b u i l d too. they the children. the that study on M r s . c h i l d r e n who d i d n ' t A// 10 a movement s h o u l d hove a pljgiground and both groups to "/hen a s k e d who w o u l d f i n a n c e said JS suggested 1943 group t u r n e d down on evacuee playground, i d e a was actually a playground d r a w n up l a s t was was study 18, but S ome two c h o i c e , when they t h e more argumerts a r e are their that they come but asked stubborn necessary. , .Journal— August 18, 1943 One g o o d a r g u m e n t and third usually i n an choice they felt center Otherwise, When this views was don't sent She matter choice least to get to cfcs i g o o d , a sent reasons say that for going they'll be to that they not. is the allowed t o go t h e most second or wherever t be allowed even a The a r g u m e n t is is to there. stuboorn ones choice. t o l e a v i n g : Tule Lake many o f come in for this reason. such a f a m i l y if i s more t h o s e who do n o t the family f a m i l y h a s made up what Tule Lake ment. serious. It show u p f o r One g i r l to f i n d is inter- this morning o u t f f i j i f i y l t f what d i d not come in for i t s mind that it happens. t o o k out they have never if because even thrr indemnity They're t h e y won* t b e a b l e They back here that their this an interview. said: "The but ones. second conscience sufficient oies / / a A-though guilty t h e y 111 b e t h e y flfifiLfL/ won by j u s t mild happen/ of if a choice type of r e s i s t a n c e that to others they If t o name a t second not stubborn explained politely Resistance presumed the first is unfair usually t make a c h o i c e , of The is with go. 10. it convenient. are willing is made "by e v e r y o n e . t o go w h e t h e r t don most not it f r o m t h e more s t u b b o r n the.best have that to arouse a sense individual, works If is sufficient second choice will is 11 if airaid to get repatriation been found. t h e y go lepre h»re once, got papers they prior to They know t h a t center, they'll t h e i r minds if lose but their I know,they won't all leave no leave money f r o m t h e Govern- to a n o t h e r from the Government. they've that won't made up." evacuation, t h e y come they feel right to come in, Journal— August H o b u s h i g e Oye, i n t e r v i e w e d lay J S on A u g u s t example of a p e r s o n at showing resistance 18, 17, 1943 is to moving. 12 a good He lives 1501-D. JS: that "I see t h a t you a r e you would like (Somewhat I don't I that answered but to alone. t o go w i t h taken possible. all T would "I that I'm alone, center. in I would h e l p A m e r i c a , ana there X intend room i n 3008, and i s no to stay sense to of that or s t a y here i f other way. anything to States, I d i d n » t meaa like stay that. t o any I h e l p e d make t h e y h a v e a s k e d me center. the United i n my g o i n g here. family center?" i n any the laws anyone would have answered say want friends obey t h e r e any to a n o t h e r aback). h a v e any Is the if other Japanese at all pos- sible." To b r e a k down s u c h sion. JS*s "I'm better line sorry but t o obey expect need more another have than from y o u . center, tion papers. don^t center. Then they that 1 don^t y o u c a n come b a c k I know i t think disloyal follows? to a p l a c e ^ B a s t i o n 28 and I to a n o t h e r as and persua- I f you do g o , a n d go the laws, yourself patience somewhat to go. some f r i e n d s that takes ran When y o u a n s w e r e d to c o n s i d e r y o u went argument you'll t o go w i t h own c h d i c e . you of resistance of y o u r enly think that t a k e out s troublesome, but you because i f y o u went i f you asked t h e y would to Japan j u s t even it^s I don to repatria- t think m we c a n h e l p that. like the other said that you And t h e r e center better is t h a t you might t h a n y o u do T u l a i « a k e . d i d n ' t h a v e any but you c e r t a i n l y a chance hav« f r i e n d s friends in other h e r e who w i l l be You centers, leaving. , .Journal— You m i g h t August 18, 1943 talk you would l i k e hasn't This is it over them and a l s o t o go a n d s e e . g i v e n us any the f i r s t the matter. with choice time about that I f you had Until it taken is you'll you get Mter decided He but half till an hour of t a l k of t o goVhome a n d d i s c u s s admitted that Then h e came he would c o n s i d e r t a n c e on an What m u s t be to this is basis the other organized haven't center." finally some intended These cases easy resistance. in papers, with relatively go. choice s o r t M r . Oye in he had are to s i n c e you the matter l e a v i n g now. individual avoided repatriation But center Government g i v i n g us any out to s t a y . to wait now t h e w h e r e we w a n t e d y o u w o u l d h a v e "been a b l e have s e e what 11 3 to of to friends. stay, resishandle. Journal— 1 . Mr. Mr. iij Friday, Akahoshi said I'd He rather says in front tricked If just this into going. I didn't spite He is of 2. ward I I Wednesday evening c o m m i t t e e was h e l d -ishidc. f only warden, There whofefc f a m i l y and J S . a formal sentatives time of with s o n why some of clarify quoted as not sat Isseis time plans in order appeared—including t h e b l ^ k manager Isseis were Tsuda, of that a r o u n d and up. sent the decided official of t h i s was g i v e n send d e l e g a t e s . the committee, but a committee of this as The informally, Isseis agreed 26. temporary together of the that to repre- Sakai representatives. at the opposed as to one rea- Kobody Dr. sort on t h e a d m i n i s t r a t i o n . talked of the experience many p e o p l e w e r e Consequently, d i a not from Block only h a l f a result a great demands was b r o u g h t out. segregation enough p e r s o n s got the as t o make d e m / a n d s few present ard II present This but ou+ t h a t saying the staying. T ana Tsuda had been because the purpose go up a f r o n t the Six Niseis Sakai blocks of h e h a s made t h o s e who a r e s h o u l d "be a p p r o v e d a s b l o c k meeting s . wouldn't were no r e p r e s e n t a t i v e s registration necessary that putting in 2820. election. was p o i n t e d all here." a meeting showed u p , end T s u d a I what committee two ¿ ¿ / / ¿ ¿ / f t representatives hold to, r o m B l o c k f$ff 2 5 a n d S a k a i , Block 28. The have probably Segregation That's the fact t o keep good r e l a t i o n s h i p oi of Mr. M i z u n o , s e t t l e down in t o reloca t e . was 1943 staying« people believe. to 20, Akahoshi "We've been It August and that bothered lohihashi was The this matter demands Journal-- ; s h o u l d h e m«<le f o r or for that p a y and 60 p e r clothing cent be g u a r a n t e e d Mr. 'no1 on Oda Oda at signs Mr. that a n d h e was the family t o do their o l d and an answer. him that 4. But this should payment six months. Takahashi was the if left Tule he could stay with he c o u l d . His probably be get sure. back not after to let his us us son son in t h e Army h a d get his is only out i t d i d f h e afraid in t h e Army. to J S ' s attention want sons I? to years 'no1 to the anyway." Hj^anted and Mr. his able about M r . Oda was I f showed to farm, being out, to Japan. come. &e on r e t a i n i n g about primarily they c o u l d not optimistic leave beginning JS told that the to believe ed to that remain case c a s e was b r o u g h t Mr. he answered t h i s was b a s e d to Colorado insisted They want to look that that out son, he c o u l d n ' t Takahashi This suggested boys had E v e n , K a n , fjfyk who "They'll an exchange/would his t o go o u t . this. f a m i l y would be sent ship behind 2 center, allowance to be d r a f t e d assured Oda was year. seems t o go obedient Tule Lake. two o f to know w h e t h e r answer. Mr. next 1943 other One p e r s o n from t h r e e they might of h a v i n g w a n t e d change the to f i n d a job, of It oda wanted Oua w a n t e d in and c l o t h i n g able a period the h e a r i n g . advised oi t h e pay informed JS that the boys, jobs 20, family the f e a r Lake. of of allowance. t h o s e not t o b e made o v e r 0 M 3. guarantee August was a\cultured person best go p l a y e r fa in He l i v e d alone with his English. She went to Oda. f r o m San F r a n c i s c o . the Project yokyoku. by M r . wife, and a l s o who He taught spoke a little 1308 Journal— for her August interview. explained g : od f o r here. stay be that her h u s b a n d was liar i n g M r . Sofye massage him, here.). d i d not condition "You must again. leave," no a n d ¿¿r. medical rather second than The / / / ¿ / i ^ X i n t e r p r e t e r worker insisted that put to to in, t h e a n s w e r was stay. time of that and for ^r. no o n e woul d replied uhe showed "T o r i t s u k u shima appeal). this rely time on h e r employing own p o o r that the husband had t h e h u s b a n d come if same, he social to in h i m s e l f send an ambulance the a Gottfried stern, it: to putting worker but she and her offered but leave. Miss infor?"ed her interview, He came along. time, asked come. signs social l-ias G o t t f M e d and that to r e p o r t e d , t h e name statement room l e f t back a to ¿3he was a s k e d why 3 h e was p o l i t e , went able be f o r c e d pulled Takahashi weeks Gottfried, reiterated the the medical ( T h e r e was n interpretor, English. and know. Takahashi (she would He was a l t h o u g h h e was t© h a v e made the Sofye to several t o l d by M i s s head. coming days. t h e y w o u l d YJt./fi and as ¿Irs. ga n a k a c t a . " nose several to have Gottfried J a c o b y h a d made to l e a v e , sympathy, a said she had and wanted t h a t j&lcie w o u l d h a v e neck and b e i n g she d i d n ' t ,-rs. is t o have nodded her forced that she " e i e she seems said She was worker, whether rope around her be go. since t h a t Mr. he had a bloody t o move f r o m h e r e , She a s k e d M i s s leave, thought stop b l e e d i n g f o r social as Garfield) (^e Also, walk around and play t h e medical too 3 T u l e L a k e was He was staying Best diabetic. improved a l i t t l e that, reason, 1943 own a c c o u n t , and he had ago which is t o her him, for i n no According 20, go. for an couldn't "e could not Journal— August According influential man, Gaa's man the community. in who w o u l d n o t else, treated threaten about five already tion, what to and the be a l l with evict places some p e o p l e h a d g o t t e n w i n d of that held 10), and he b r o u g h t up with forced to leave i f Bebt statement be sent Best that to ather dia that was b e i n g at and an increase ^r. Oda w a n t e d tfcneideration asked in to keep q u i e t out by force. say that JS utai. ¿¿e h a d evic- down ar.d see in Block went 25 that on a it sit- block (Block it he h a d b e e n that clear of through a list and told a p e r s o n would be f o r c e d in the block asked If Japa- meeting the a wave o f not to condition. consul. indignation, to leave JS c - u l d n ' t that signed t a k e n up a i t h to be willing were g o i n g consul--the Takahashi, threatened he w o u l d b e their m e e t i n g was being in Takahashi's questions t o l d M r . G&a ££ evening determination about taught That t o know w h e t h e r for Mr. Ke sit of that the Spanish the outrageous it. the matter the block was Soi'ye on t h e r e m o v a l to d i s c u s s it threatened with out regardless he wanted held reaction camps via i n Mr. t o make anyone a n d had mentioned ease an gentle- were taught Mr, He d e c l a r e d everyone n e s e Government The were ill. they'll the f a c t eviction. was 4 h e was A man who the Takahashi's aotfn s t r i k e a n d made a t e s t a b l o c k m e e t i n g was it Besides could do. if but being the matter, thing If and a i s o about t h e r e s p o n s e was a good Takahashi 1945 He was a q u i e t right, respect. administration would be kr. a man who was different told account, do a n y t h i n g r a s h . it / / X W might s h o u l d be to to ^ r , 20, get the project. special r e t u r n he might that he would be no o n e was to l e a v e , be sent supposed to and o f f e r e d to Journal go August s e e Mr. see &he stoxy. Ke intentions most things the except for only this of that living He was that had also left, be f o r c e d JS apologized for take in saying time he than she was, tb»t suspected that they had reasons in that the said fact really as t didn't smoothly pre in that sion order at he that they the Carter. wrong about sure He antagonizing. said, could, "e till U said that the h i s P had e n d of properit. They no o n e w o u l d also out. hat to stay. Mr. Oda broke quiet about want over to give into JS the keeping He d i d n ' t for she d i d not seemed g«t know Welfare G o t t f r i e d had she quiet anyone. the Social t h a t Miss point t h e ira- she relpy.ed t h e case a n d was a n g r y b e c a u s e that t h e same eviction. consideration. and didn't t h o s e who to keep Takahashi h e a d of e s a i d more that he g l o s s e d consdieration At not said Takahashi but lx said. s h e h a d made a mis- forced d i d not the matter, said Japan. ttofeeatened w i t h this sped al She to return t o wait could be allowed Montgomery m e n t i o n e d attitude, to interviewer J S saw Dorothy Montgomery, Department Japan, interviewer him s p e c i a l could get to that h e was b r i b i n g M r . t o get take back to have would be he had been as he He h a d b o u g h t much o f JS wanted Mr. want of Takahashi there wasn't to l e a v e . had medical and the h e was that side Lake. what but Oda their w i n d although/ to l e a v e Tule to to u n d e r s t o o d Mr. Best know who 5 with in America• ready he w a n t e d t h e war b e c a u s e h e w a n t e d t y b e f o r e he J S went i n f o r m a t i o n . / Mr. he wanted furniture. t h i n g was 19) F r o m them h e h e a r d a l s o got h a d no m o r e The (August the Takahashis. of 1943 Takahashi. The f o l l o w i n g m o r n i n g to 20, to the to be 'kickbacks* Journal— August JC asked Grace Kashiguchi that Deki ftakazawa, had a d i f f i c u l t time working Analyst. case. said cause with her. and t h e m e d i c a l along amicably. the Social Gottfried, the Japanese medical e l f a r e Department gotten about that s h e was a / JS took He said he wanted "pet" from \ ashing ton. of giving mechanical want a s h e h a d on D r . fried at That Pedicord. a meeting, mechanical smile night Caucasians to be JS about that she Opler, into sensitive the girl to questions, "picking" evening who repressed answers a n d ¿ ¿ ¿ j L f i / j i f f l / was that never ytffl w o r k e r s h e was a a c c u s e d of That had to $ r . social considered a t y p e of didn't Social e a s y on G o t t f r i e d be- He t h o u g h t •jr. O p l e r informed the he would l o o k t o go 6 worker, worker the matter was m i s u n d e r s t o o d . individual, Also, the medical She was 1943 a n d was social social thi£ 20, on h e r , J S saw Miss Gott- i m p r e s s e d w i t h fche possessed. i n f o r m e d Mr. Gda that he had the matter, and that they would the matter. (Also, told see JS Diary several look for into August 19.) 5 . Mr. Obayashi mt. Obayashi harder. He was It t o l d JS that was m o r e d i f f i c u l t selected as the c a u s e he would have t h e blame fffyi for to he or wanted vent thought He to keep in out to of reactionary, that he might become answer. the it the project se- beand corae t h o s e who r e m a i n e d b e h i n d , a slight still. a 'no' f r o m t h o s e who m i g h t t h a t M r . Y o s h i d a was very retain representative remain behind mistakes projects now t o temporary g r e g a t i o n 1c o m m i t t e e , b u t from other the hearing had r e c e n t l y ue take in thought even though he hsve started this Journal— August iflsa of the against handling cause he segregation felt the that committee. 20, 1943 Mr. Obayashi 7 advised s e g r e g a t i o n f i j f j ^ j L ^ ^ j i p r o b l e m be- trouble v/ould b e s t i r r e d up if the committee.did. 6. Fear of those There is fear leaving expressed made up t h e i r m i n d s down a n d n o t words, they without any t o go g o may n o t are afraid sort of to get w e r e made c l e a r have that this of leave. tion. make of important They h o p e d their that leaving, 6. Advice father and than of soing the they if had it to doubtful sit leave, on down a n d n o t sufficient t of the clari- administra- administration the whole putting for that list to been on t h e p a swing other affair up a p r o t e s t in to to favor stay. to Opler JS advised Dr. Opler Me a s k e d why h i m a n d J o h n 1). C o o k , material. Opler's ''aahington office relocation, t i e most said the removal JS could get \ In o f B l o c k 2 5 when They h d n 1t that sit e x p r e s s e d by they were kept points stand clear of gation. out to fools f e a r was them would be l i k e l y They p o i n t e d fication If all. considered This p e o p l e wn t h o s e who h a v e after clarified. quietly. more to go, T a n a b e a n d Hi & d a matters of t h o s e who a t t e m p t of b e i n g t h e y would l e a v e point, that protest. t h e block manager, urged JS on t h e p a r t s t r e s s e d was that there wasn't of in the more information that Crpss, the Reports D i v i s i o n , thought that the s o much segrebetween relocation from was the handling t h e R e p o r t s D i v i s i o n was t h e w h o l e '7RA. stand of on coordination a n d why Cook p r i n t e d explanation a n d Cook impsttant t o p u b l i s h more One p o i n t that administration JS should be Journal-made He AugU3t c l e a r / +hat also asked farm workers taken that the f r o m an o u t s i d e to play Another point people will that draft this that not they paper. point JS thought out c a n come b a c k Opler was cagey h e r e , being criticized for too, being went at choice, all. but p o i n t e d out g.od They the Sofves, examples. as news that it for item was outside another dan- criticism. center. if they that Another so desired. t h e WRA was too p a t e r n a l with evacuees. that want t o go t o go it were the Kishiyamas, out to reluctantly t o go b e c a u s e if / / T u l e Lake would be also pointed wanted d i d not were w i l l i n g of the fact evacuees leave. that should be played up. the to out crowded of had 8 s h o u l d b e m e n t i o n e d was pointing suggested / t h a t many of to a center JS also that felt fear 1943 possibilities perhaps Opler up f o r be f o r c e d list deferment should be p u b l i s h e d , gerous was t h o a e on t h e r e m o v a l 20, of Opler if their inevitably. and I s h i z u k a s they own He as , .Journal— 7. Sofve August 18, 1943 11 family The S o f y e f a m i l y the Ai family, e wants 0 t o Dr. to leave The father leaving like relocate seems retort was: Yoshiko parents to s h e was told might be How h e r list. that folks Aiko, just she w a s n ' t she are want 8. i n grammar The He's staying boy determined Japanesy to center ,1a n a i to no." feel in a a n d was p r e v a i l e d upon But to when s h e went a of her to the removal glad because doesn't she seem s h e was attitude c a n youfl/ badly effective. on although Her hearing, registration. all, disloyal kept place Scffe pretty he all stay Mrs. (What at 'no.' is a while. If to answer school, at that was voci- one y o u do a b o u t because he does to of, it.) not Japan. family eldest sisters want record Japan. for to be c o n s i d e r e d Kato got are another seuns has center. fact the messhall they to t o get Japan. dismayed because to Sofye the to be mind going ^r. to spoken another late still ga nai to too return "Shikata able in hack. He's be about boy time getting registered to about 'no.? t h e r e w a s no have ferous don't became, register that family "I some going Even at the The possible. disloyalty stay. sullen answer worried mean in friction. he might before quite everyone c h e c k u p on why won't to if that hearing that by h e r It told to be he wants "no" directly, Tule Lake might this." little changed h i s clearance possible, Bob's had a a<D by a n d w a s his saying Boh, has answered family. repatriated, not but t o change h i s 'no.' Their This is was answer. a good adjustment called is for His example to Japan. a hearing. two of other a quiet , .Journal— 9. August 18, 1943 11 Rumor The r u m o r about having to sign some sort f l o a t i n g around. The P l a n n i n g B o a r d was of the paper those to sign. off the that One man no one was only of r i e d by for Huycke expected things change the in to they Garter w h i l e H u y c k e was was a t Their They d i d but was become an JS that left. The card, and p e r m i t s were some car- they applied their a grant, tiying several Jeft, b e c a u s e t u r e might they taken of to not ago. to do. had to t r a c e down for days they sign the refuting Garter rumor Board d i d n * t want to sign o c c a s i o n might rumor, the The P l a n n i n g t h a t ¿ ¿ f y i / . ^ no one w o u l d h a v e they the paper. s i g n Porm 1 3 0 when Carter t o know what were t h e P l a n n i n g B o a r d had a copy still angry at military hold forced and l e a r n e d s i g n a n y t h i n g when received requested a loss announce to sign still to get three persons t h e Leave O f f i c e cards. escort. When a s he had two or is to be t h e y jfaljL w e r e g i v e n w e r e a l e a v e address receipt. that trying supposed they refused I n d e f i n i t e Leave, this. when stated stage because c a l l e d up M r . l e a v i n g was of p a p e r for to anything a r i s e when a signa- necessary. 1 0 . Hanako Y a s u d a Hanako is Tatsuo iigi's father. Borothy, possible for T a t s u o 1s Hanako Mr. Y a s u d a w a n t e d unless to he c o u l d f i n d to be stay on sidered the resident one, th&j and wife, list. a part in Tule Lake, could change h i s If all l i v i n g with her asked JS whether considered here is a good r e a s o n f o r h a d a h e a r i n g a n d d i d not was sister the of Tatsuo*s doing so. answer, and Hanako was family. a n d he c o u l d not two f a m i l i e s stay. it foster Tatsuo consequently c o u l d b e con- herself d i d not Journal— want to fact that duled August stay in Tule Lake. h e r boy to leave. families out a talk two tion v. s. to I n J5f a types to Dorothy be considered of on A u g u s t opinion s h o u l d not the educati nal called upon counseling A person t o one individual. for two of p e o p l e all just Because discrepancies segrega- public. The Ha stated e x i s t / ^ S e %? w o . of the facts clarified. the ^ by * trained i n what weak. and on h a n d The success ¿.kill of the could upset saying the interviewers an( pointed whole t h e wrong weren't thing suffi- uniformly, there tell coming they those are in interview. 12. Carter At on u s e the meeting l e n g t h how t h e be the l i k e Miss G o t t f r i e d trained ^ X U M X i / undoubtedly Carter s e r v i c e w o u l d d e p e n d on and groups the to a t t e n d hearings sufficiently rumors were blocks sche- program has been very and before ciently 19, in having interviewer. that and f a m i l i e s . make d e c i s i o n s w i t h o u t the is the one, programs within individuals The p e o p l e h a d b e e n of twins, educ a t i n g t h e g e n e r a l counseling opinion 11 influencedby t h e Yagi clear interviewers differences probably 1945 counseling p r o g r a m - - o n e was that it c o u l d not different o t h e r was one of J S ma&e probably 11* E d u c a t i o n In friend, She's 20, answered. "We a r e reason teacher how i s is not of of i n t e r v s wers question, He giving a direct It a boy she g o i n g "Will Carter elaborated we b e f o r c e d at great to leave?" should said: simple. tells force answer corresponds to see t o do it. to to this the the principal The m i n u t e question. The s i t u a t i o n where a and t h e boy the teacher says says that , .Journal— she August 18, 1943 i s going t o f o r c e h i m t o go The m i n u t e we s a y is going that there t o h e community t h e "boy knows what to do. going there gation p r o g r a m o r d e r e d hy W a s h i n g t o n , program, that if have tremendous a r e going to do rest to ing the to a great not taken effect of the successful of of weeks move. side so t h a t because all and weeks project who w i l l disrupt the whole oi than is going 'force', vcrk. Committee We will also try- The *7RA h a s made and f e a r s are utilize are the use t o do u h e n t o do that. We s h o u l d he There question. A while back Bight stay side. is If going individuals of t h e work W e with the anyone t o undo in this 'force' segregation there hinges our t h e r e was a p o s s i b i l i t y community would not this We a r e to t h e problems h ve been the negative go. p e o p l e f a / f i f i j b / w i t h u s now. "If individual resentments of going to community." the problem. the it's the evacuees. know what we a r e g o i n g Washington rather t h e word word, "Avoid the segregation. s h o u l d k e e p away f r o m t h e p r o b l e m . uses of for through of. don't positive reasons to segre- a n d we a r e g o i n g the future the action advantages " A c t t a l l y we d o n ' t people on going we h a v e a the Japanese-Americans. justified care this: the program i s n ' t many p r e p a r a t i o n s really is We a r e / e x p l a i n i n g s h o w what show t h e attitude 8o we a r e n o t ourselves. the program. t o "be f o r c e , resistance. commit with The is 11 fe h a v e i s watch i n g c a r e f u l l y . not If that the majority We h a v e p a s s e d program is biggest of the the hump." successful this the fails, the Dies the evacuees Journal— August a r e do»» f o r . Avoid the ""/e h - v e t o make a the 24th, come or m i g h t y their 1943 13 question." train list close i n , we a r e g o i n g 20, to to to send that. shuffle If the t o W a s h i n g t o n by the people train list don't without preference." "Mrs. Preedman how t h e group i s making a r e p o r t ¡resistance then it is is forming. If o u r probfcfcn. i s y o u r probfefcm. The same so that we w i l l the r e s i s t a n c e If it is thing holds know is individual, for in then t h o s e who it don't come i n . " . G r o u p movement lies and r e l a t i v e s that friends to tain this was m o r e applications but 13. Miss k e r ' s, is ver" something. reason. think is together. 7Je h a d the feeling t o go of to a cer- came b a c k ' y e s . ' <e've h a d The b l o c k m a n a g e r s the groups will themselves." Gottfried, medical t h o s e who c l a i m i l l n e s s stay in Tule L a k e / It's to use ellness something are piling t h a t / / i most something trying report social wor- a b an ex- f r o m what she said interviewers: easy People uesire the fami- attitude toward t 0 to keep the on k e e p i n g h e n we g o t so f a r . a g l i m p s e of M i s s /Ytt/Wftt/ "It than organizing to A was v/ e a&ked w h e t h e r f r o m 14 g r o u p s wanting first flfjfr The a n s w e r Gottfried's at wanted important attitude cuse for are deare. a r e not One g e t s that together. destination. help, emphais and f a m i l i e s consider unity I "The t o make people that that for they will everything as or n o t everyone approves up m e d i c a l are doing reasons for sincere not be about able comfortable doing of a s staying. it. to do. as a However, '-.7e possible journal-for most them. cases travel will t o make any t o work it August The f i n a l decision a n y p e r - o n who i s p r o b a b l y b e not explanation, out." rests with SO, 1 9 4 3 the doctor. up a n d a r o u n d a n d a b l e allowed Send to stay. DonSt 14 In to try t h e m t o us a n d we s h a l l try Journal— Saturday, 1« R e s i s t a n c e to Eesistance who a r e Others to. do n o t is refuse come i n f o r t o move 20 p e r that veral interviewers their choice in the of choices» of discussion took p l a c e came his in at the that other in to us it Kay T i f t At is discussion his and end. increase the to in increased of left Within According signs, but they a r e not the discussion leaving give One among such the Takahashi the to l o s e talk case. loyalty Today a man t h e r e was t o Cerky it's to resistance they had to the block that refused leaving. were g o i n g se- cancel^ reached Block 25. r i g h t s when there t h e meet- a l s o mentioned interview because and l o u d e r . that of about was m e n t i o n e d by in want segregation up i n B l o c k 23 c e n t e r e d u p o n a r e no d e f i n i t e tell recently i n B l o c k 10 a r o u n d t h o s e who properties become l o u d e r "There the to cancel block their and one disadvantages A n o t h e r was b r o u g h t question, For interviews. it There to 19, t o go hut interviews. thing, so. t h e y do n o t resistance indication b l o c k p e o p l e on t h e certers interviews, p e r s o n s h a d come the people t o do Q u i t e a number t h e r e w e r e m o r e pe o p l e who Another on t h e p a r t their former centers. t h r e e days c h o i c e of those the on A u g u s t that wanting do so b e c a u s e that of of From t h e v e r y b e g i n n i n g t h e week. interviewers a matter welfare come i n f o r has been c a n c e l l a t i o n of social center. to believe increased during ing t h a n one t h e y do n o t have not reasons largely to a t t e n d h e a r i n g s . their to another cent is l e a v e Tule Lake not to g i v e more others presumed are segregation scheduled!to Still 1943 segregation to refuse ////l/// August 2 1 , all sign to talk in of something stay has Kawasaki, brewing. P e o p l e come the p r o j e c t , and Journal— t h e n go they August tell their cb n« t h a v e An a n a l y s i s friends to it1 s all that »21, decided leave." made by M r s . Preedman of t h o s e who w e r e that not they were duled to l e a v e t o do one of blocks and w a r d s . 81 c a s e s to the The of the project e v e n when s o ffyfakjL/ i n d i c a t e s Eighty t h e s e have been It of seme that t o movement the sodial they were interesting tabulated / / / is possible resistance attention 4 that i n t e r v i e w e d a n d who f i n d i c a t e d going 1942 there points. according to a r e more w h i c h was n o t welfare sche- than brought department head. t a b u l a t i o n by w a r d s wass 22 Ward 1 Ward II....14 Ward III...13 Ward I V . . . . 7 Ward V 3 Ward VI....14 Ward VII...11 The m o s t obvious f a c t to be g o t t e n from t h i s that least of the coming in for reason for those amount resistance interviews this is that came there the greatest For reason, that also, amount they the part of of v i e w e d up families families/in group till 20. August d i d not begin till those One aren't in of v e r y many f a m i l i e s to leave trouble probably the project during furnished because registration. the wholly number is f r o m f a r d V a n d Ward I V . two w a r d s who a r e f o r c e d they had on tabulation smallest a II The and I I I , which were interviewing August 21. of Only a the intersplit tabulation Journal— of August»21,19424 the f a m i l i e s who f a i l e d and reveal These a of of reveal rumors for the in these a ward. reason for certain a rumor-monger in the block, the ( such as clustered clusters. possibility The is The prevalence the account existence attitude the a t t i t u d e around investigation a w a r d may v e r y w e l l sector. in will segregation. futther the block manager, difference cases plus-plus, a b o v e 60 (G), that of to to be Only interview of the leaders p r o b a b l y makes of the people a in block. These 81 age, of Another in tend these sector clusters. deal also an t h e y do n o t resistance within of great of resistance c e r t a i n block will t h e r e a s o n s why t h e whole p i c t u r e cases t o come i n f o r r e s i s t a n c e were plus, to below 4 5 ) , female with unknown of category plus-minus, bachelor children (f?), (B), also t a b u l a t e d as m i n u s — raig.ng family single (P), female, (#). Bachelors plus-plus.....15 plus-minus....15 minus.•••••...-6 Family plus-plus Plus minus plus-minus 3 (4 c h i l d r e n ) 1 (3 c h i l d r e n ) 5 (7 children) 3 (1 with 6 c h i l d r e n ) (2 with 3 children each) 7 (8 c h i l d r e n ) 4 (3 with 3 c h i l d r e n each) (1 with 6 c h i l d r e n ) 1 (2 Couple plus-plus 7 plus...........2 plus-minus 1 children) to from couple a n d one Journal— August »21, 1942 4 £ (?) plus-plus minus Single 1 . . 2 (2 (3 children) children) • > female plus minus 1 2 # (?) plus*•••••••••3 plus-minus,...1 Wile this clues. tance In is tabulation the first/ concern with ties, place, and t h e of slim. economic an a l l . In fact, they to another center some f u t u r e be permanent nomic date, for the reason for ecmmunity ties, they to wish they in that motive group. they have for duration, least their t o work very to another center them b e l i e v e that be forced stay in Tule Lake. in the which makes to other would strong Because if relocate in Tule Lake which becomes a lack friends resis- of ecolack their/of c e n t e r s whom join. The o l d c o u p l e resistant their of t h e o n e s who too old t o go many o f are several They h a v e also they will whereas staying ties. are offers amount They t h e Hi s e i s , incentive very it the greatest They becomes at accurate, or/community the welfare bond w i t h America go not o f f e r e d by a g e much d bachelors. h a v e no f a m i l y hard, is goinc Among t h e c a s e s are fairly strongly I n i m a n y ways little are resistance among f a m i l y t o b e no a g e d i f f e r e n c e . What group is those of a n d no in to the bachelors, economic center. seems t h e number similar t i e s with Hiseis to another of they represented children groups, characterizes listed there this possess. Here tournai— August presumably there sake of Lake offers ciding the report indicated 249, which a family the or an over were If unwillingness total number 25 p e r at economic security least would have t o another center, the little actual represent t h e 81 third reason number a resistance not it is not prganized either. that be Tule t h e de- reported résistants of for In and a s f a r the number I and the population resisting involved in the is in re- when other words, it II, movement percentage as to and to s i n c e Group smaller t h e whole p o p u l a t i o n . wholesale, the that t o move a r e a d d e d compared with is for s c h e d u l e d and 167 f a i l e d However, one 1943 cases. of p o s s i b l e cent. Tule Lake, group would centers these Interview* their the to other w i t h many c h i i i r e n m i g h t i n marçy o f constitute sistant but .971 i n t e r v i e w s for above, some p u l l ohildren, factor In a l l is 21, the known, Journal— 1. The One is Sunday, August 22, 1943 loyalty factor question which the fact that is in inconsistent. This whose f a m i l i e s are who h a v e no c h o i c e ing. list However, to that state interfere staying are leaving loyal segregation t h e minds of the Isseis inconsistency i n Group of in to of the# United they t o be J a p a n e s e Actually, choice, however, or leaving the basis of loyal if live or be b u r n e d , t h e y want considered jects, to and not their disloyal country cannot only one c i t i z e n s h i p Many of be or contribute practically no I s s e i what is willing States those is to to be American. to c a l l can to than their they their the rest of of conducted the hoe Japanese because little a choice bridges that Japan they i s more loyal to live they is those return to be If They f e e l and one c o u n t r y and whether It them. questioned, them w o u l d b e w i l l i n g i n America but ones. United and I V had v e r y disloyalty. behind to be to "going to burn b r i d g e s the the p e o p l e had a they be given reluctance on impression wanted is leav- Nevertheless, The III segregation or the United they wanted i n Group those 28 a r e the in America, demand t h a t loyalty of is consequently to Japan, that they by t h e y h a v e made States. or w h e t h e r those karjy I s s e i s staying to to effort. administration wanted and »loyal* the laws as being felt in Tuie Lake commitment t h e war program the program to Question considered with the and IV, 'yes* only i e most staying the matter—whether whether wanted III either the spoken g i v e n by cnoice on the t h e y w o u l d obey and not or up and a r e States. Isseis holding I s s e i s who a n s w e r e d removal also for to subloyalty have own. their t h e war to have h i m s e l f lives effort, considered Journal— loyal August to America t o America the in is ana disloyal l a r g e l y made up o f second g e n e r a t i o n . t h e war effort country they lives. If tate have r e s i d e d ship, his because As long most that they are oi t h e minds cannot of to the wish of America their hesi- States. States of leaders a Japanese and one with the the United hesitating immi- citizen- t o say where concept u s e d by in i s not philosophy of composition Isseis of likely of but the is not are to find to a country, and d i s l o y a l to implications citizen- of all. a mili- whose to of life or political Isaeis. In other Among t h o s e who loyalty Communists from J a p a n would b e l o n g never Their tfji way of who w o u l d p r e f e r to Japan. to in discrimina- practically naive p o l i t i c a l l y . Isseis racial that xvar a t t o o much c o n c e r n the p o l i t i c a l be l o y a l prevented ineligibility Japan to is by to a c e r t a i n p o l i t i c a l are very refugees Isseis Those words referring living, i s not of ralationship. t h e y must thinking the segregation, nation. attachment of on a c o u l d be c o n s i d e r e d a t i s b u t / s o r t of the m a j o r i t y Isseis is based some, adoption, of loyalty to tarist-fascist Political of to help owe 4 Isseis ties the United country America, An I s s e i ' s t o America think and part way f o r a country, skip* one i s right to is of persecution, a r e aware the this of t h e y would not to citizens tion, words, 'loyal' to b e ' l o y a l ' is they the greater t h e y h a v e one concept country. , country this (on) citizens, Japan because ties 1942 belongs. Issei's Since as Isseis loyalty An beat ties also willing in for themselves are willing arid h e l p Her grant. are they were American others in Japan, They The economic t o r e t u r n a debt t o ]6/6 c o n s i d e r Still to Japan. »21, in to t o be and this Japan, loyal other category- Journal— an August extremely Isseis Japan has attachment Opl e r , the small very to her is th<* S o c i a l attitu/de sequently, they one. of For the vast little political ppart h e made t h e m i s t a k e s h o u l d not be a f r a i d of of loyalty ning, a n d was crecy of The the out concern in the Akahoshi say behind from the statement them This very as Con- that confidential. Isseis this discussion came to to of loyalty question beginthe of August see JS with a copy to l i n e s t o know e x a c t l y in what is held of B l o c k 2 5 , , a n d J S , He p o i n t e d and w a n t e d matter on t h i s on t h e m o r n i n g interview notice. graph, over B l o c k Mangger to c o n s u l t / Mr. question. burning bridges the ffili/ se- documents. ¿&r. A k a h o s h i , came consideration. of m a k i n g B e s t a g g r a v a t e d by B e s t 1 s Isseife brought bothered immigrant understand loyalty b e c a u s e WRA d o c u m e n t s w o u l d b e k e p t matter of 3 signific,tn c e - - t h e i r c o u l d not toward the 1943 majority f r o m argr p o l i t i c a . 1 Analyst, isseis 22, clearly between whom h e 1^. of the the family first para- they meant. They read: "1..This place of a c t i o n has beun protection e v a c u e e s who p r e f e r the cause loyalties of Japan do n o t and promote to l i v e in explained that to attention of Block 23. loyalty stay and The in order i n J a p a n or persons f e e l i n g was attending if to America and d i s l o y a l t y in Tuie Lake. a r e known Many h a d g o n e or a of to all favor whose States." disturbing that welfare hostilities the United these to provide the general the present l i e with M r . A. the taken lines h a d b e en a Block meeting called in leaving the center meant to Japan they would rather to cancel the d i s c u s s i o n had reached Block 25. their interviews, Journal— JS1s August answer served to ana allay e x p l a n a t i o n was too were that of spoke satisfied with s e g r e g a t i o n was loyalty that and to f o u r the fear. other pfifrf p e o p l e h a d The explanation. and the some c h o i c e o n e s who h a d a c h o i c e w e r e II. those in the Those in Group choice. disloyal. Those answers registered or reservations. out any been III—those in Group The «yes* only to in the m a t t e r , they were t h e 7KA a s b e i n g loyal—they would be After to against It as is their with- fact loyalty without that would be so a had s t a m p e d by signifying forced Isseis afraid h a v i n g made the choice, some way. of Those they T h e s e who l e a v e T u l e L a k e have this being c l e a r t h a t many / t o Japan themselves. in loyal published that to leave they Isseis Tule Lake wish. choice it some Isseis only be ins were not t h e war about d i s l o y a l / a n d more that aith to l e a v e the Japanese Government, s h o u l d h a v e no f e a r their considered required a considered loyal made by i n Group have q u e s t i o n 2 8 — w h i c h was n o t any a n d made c l e a r d i d not considered commitment Sire e they were b e i n g loyal. those who c h a n g e d IV were question. choice really basis Actually, repatriates--»ere late—were Those to answer I--the i n Group question. groups out given raattar. the only other they d o n e on t h e however, All and JS pointed the it stone d a y i m p r e s s i o n was in 4 because persons, announsjd a s b e i n g disloyalty, 1943 significant the Block Manager's t h e B l o c k Mansg e r 22, of of still being afraid of b e i n g thought i n Group of their h a v i n g made on b e i n g on to l e a v e but the fence. > own c h o i c e must forced stamped I I have a c h o i c e , c a n no l o n g e r b e T h o s e who a r e the advantage are rationalize Tule Lake the fence and being in Journal-another from, August 22, 1643 center. ana the They segregation c o m m i t t e d on one Tanabe on side "I leave considereed keep but it do they He this disloyal secret it. Japan even t o keep it I it tell that In 30 b e c a u s e T a n a b e was the the block the He h a s not interviewer where he haa close t that get not shiteru be his his first friends. so many third choice Tule Lake. h e must r/ationalize his stand They to having people them them." Since h e went the rest and re- of g o i n ^ some r e s i s t a n c e . in do ka. ) to cancel t o o many o f protest, ,His and h i s What without they had of just a b l e ,to go b a c k center choice another, You ja nai indentions showing to be would or fooled!• Type A i n B l o c k 2 5 . over they secret. center were signified w-thout that th there typical that another re going one c e n t e r people will repatriation registered too. (Baka n i said in *^on't scree o t h e r after August like t h e y go t o secret. Best y o u ' v e bean fools? 1 I f y o u do y o u people: clear though but them T a n a b e h e a t e d l y why h e was to J a p a n . for venter, to get started other. place. h- ve a p p l i e d gistered failed they said: whether t h i n k we a r e , s h o u l d make of the how c a n y o u k e e p a m a t t e r can't "back f r o m w h e r e program has telling Tule Lake. can't or right loyalty Cne man was h e a r d leaving are 5 to L.e another told c e n t e r WQS G r a n a d a , s e c o n d c h o i c e was Japan, However, to if some way. he is He wat leave heard reply: "Loyalty concern any and d i s l o y a l t y Isceis. difference Anyway, concerns x.iseis, to Japan whether y o u ' r e it's i n one not sort but it going of doesn't t o make cente: or in to Journal— August 22, 1943 6 another," 3. Hearing According t o Mas T a n a k a , tion hearing, it is running calling the Y ' s . and i'or soma it uidn1 t were allowed to s a y what about their t o determine sisted an very beginning. that they although Mas thought if their choice tion foolish, wer the are t o go a n d what losing but that his and say Director that They detail who hazy more in- clear the from d i d not change did. Tule Lake t o another (z e n s h o they have seyo). center? the best It's «ay out to bootlick better them and idea Whoever if enough b r a i n s a^ked that It Why too means for the people should that himself the ketos them ques- T u l e L a k e was foiblish asked them told of g i v i n g he l e f t was for t o ans- t h e documents would b e of k u f f u t t e m o). easy, also oent This citizenship solution if in people 20 p e r to do. the best even were grievances t h e i r minds f o r The J a p a n e s e GOT m m e n t take most themselves. secret. should their s t a n d was them m i s e r a b l e . the Project question going very Isseis t h e r e h e r e who h a v e made up i s making about they T h o s e who w e r e stood. on l e a v i n g minds f o r t h e ; Gove: nment them where of only about segrega- said: "How many p e o p l e t o make up h e a r i n g was questioned they their the t h a n a Tew m i n u t e s . were where for On F r i d a y pleased. the board a l l stand—perhaps K r . Kay a the t a k e more Kay a* s rat i o n a l i z a t i o n 4. interpreter smoothly. however, telling some t i m e , a said definitely took their He stand, an to they be the kept find ashamed Jsp a n e s e and h i s family, ( k e t o no m a t a o Journal— August Bacnelor •»•his of v.s. story, A bachelor you think Lake?" for that to a f r i e n d ' s you'll pay it be back. segregation rule children Ke outside, but why d o n ' t l i f e you led. Why talking about 6. of Fall This was h e a r d didn't in find clever, though? 7 . &re . Ishizuka ^rs. not Ishizuka necessary be happy "It about uqcbe't couldn't the You to drank Japan? now." home. shower room l a s t ?rtien t h e A m e r i c a n s a single Japanese night. landed sol&iers. ( Umai k o t o y a t t a n e , ) " received for her it. to She a form l e t t e r stay a p e r s o n who w a n t s Weren't (meaning saving in Tule Lake. to b e the that She answer, they'll let b e c a u s e my h u s b a n d was a a s k rne many on . . i s k a they Japanese it was seemed to said: m a t t e r how y o u uo a r y t h i n g they didn't loyalty you Kiska " D i d y o u know th&t they out answered: s e n d any money b a c k up a n d went leaving a n d was g o i n g Lid you shut question. t o J a p a n by I ] now t h e k i n d o f s h o u l d you b e relationship "^on* t three the the end you gambled. The man 7 p l a c e and asked him: the children. owe me $ 2 5 0 f r o m the disloyal He was a man w i t h t h e s;.ke of "You illustrates t o a f a m i l y man i n came 1943 f a m i l y man t o l d by M r . Kay a , a bachelor 22, questions." forced out. i he is you g o . I (no-yes' and one example of Journal— 1. Tuesday, August 24, 1943 oe®ation Mr. ammittee S i s h i d a made a r e p o r t w h i c h met Sunday i n Block 25. of an I s s e i evening The the cided stitute be considered was not limited 'Mr. ¿ » i s h i d a ana to the tative the two h o u r s . asked that all The ue colonists s t a t e what complaining aLked about enumerated. r i g h t - : to enter also on was out or to e n t e r 77RA c e n t e r s , in terner^ent camps Lake became a c l o s e d to would be It staying two w i t h a the represen- s t a y more than Captain Kart^in, and put doivn specific that thought in too prepared with investigate he committee He came a d a y the date, or in complaints to lodge he d i d not the a h a v e much ri.rht conditions. that in food be a b l e a l t h o u g h he had center, in the s e r v e d on a c e r t a i n said de- h e l d with i n c o m p l a i n i n g á) out He a l s o was from both g r o u p s . \ and d i d not the but those the meeting O t h e r w i s e he would not properly. it the whole p r o j e c t . specific the h o s p i t a l , Nisei. w o u l d con- that committee, representative, that and a the a r r i v e d at be t u r n were decided Spanish Consul. He in called to represent complaints writing, cumplaint also S t a t e Department about t o h e made up others being t h e P l a n n i n g E o a r d was n o t to ask him. be the yesterday to Itfishida, c o m p o s e d of members questions of was Issei committee» time from each ward, those going were of one a segregation reported representative early, It called but lunch c o m m i t t e e was according committee, a committee Tule Lake, at f r o m e a c h w a r d , who seven members, necessary. would not segregation representatives--an a working whenever the in 2820, committee meeting, that of segregation ana a N i s e i e l e c t e d tsy "block At report If he might to ^ule be Journal— able to August »21, 1 9 4 2 4 enter more any m e s s a g e f o r read a freely. the s t a t ement When a s k e d w h e t h e r Japanese which in America t h e r e was from Japan, he read: Wj&iSAJl; PAHA SUB-uITOS JAPOftSSES DE LA CAMERA m R^KE&i^TAIfTIuS JAPQEBSA The J a p a n e s e G o v e r n m e n t subjects resident in requests the United States Japanese house of K e p r e s e n t a t i v e s February 27th, expressing citizens in in the countries name o f at their war t h e Ration», that the be Japanese informed that aprroved a resolution sympathy with Japan a message to their and t o of the on national send them, hope. August 20, 1943 2 FM by C a p t a i n A. i*ishfcda discussed on the 1. also announced the p o s s i b i l i t y administrat To demand setting 2. jobs lying not 3. he in To that to of jobs in stated as committee following demands carry on because winter not to. the would sufficient. t h o s e who a r e unable The a s s u m p t i o n newcomers from Tule Lake to underwill centers. t h q y move t h a t Mr. saying for t h e y move for to o f b a g g a g e was the papers s i g n when reported the center grants other investigate Kiehida is is segregation of baggage another the center available persons Mr. for i n and 150 pounds this be of making 300 p o u n d s To demand p a y m e n t find the ion: t r a i n when l e a v i n g be that R-Lrartin that to t h e VHA w i l l another T s u d a made that it was the require center. report useless in /ard II. t o raa.*e e x c e s s i v e J ournal-demands August 24, 1943 of t h e V;iiAt "but he thought that t e s e demands 3 were reabonaoie. i i r . i a i s h i d a made it was sort difficult of H attended t h e demands T h e r e 1 y6niy faction. very to get lunchtime together "because to hear any were the After/ too, unreasonable. two o f all, us, this is and ai d h e d i d n o t But I aon't wartime, he believe said: h a v e any dissatis- and y o u c . n ' t expect much." m a d e by the in A bottleneck can be an a r d e n t 2508, carried 8/12 42 8/13 102 8/14 99 8/15 144 8/17 176 one where 5 8/20 12 8/21 42 8/22 none 8/23 none in t h i n g by the on. 8/18 8/19 of the demands process has been c r e a t e d for supporter committee. segregation seen conducted at were being be segregation Bottleneck This block people the meeting, He w o u l d p r o b a b l y n o t 2. curing report, Mr. Xaya that t h e announcement (Sunday) the segregation t h e number largest number of of process« interviews interviews Journal— The August split 21. family On A u g u s t scheuuied, 24, while Prom Thursday or very creating were capable the Hannah, the they couldn't also of that do it." with to the completed being on M o n d a y . Carter said work as she in that supposed t o be schedule. the Y8s, said, of "I them knew Murayama the lag and b l a n k why August the the would p r o b a b l y more were schedule? split remaining J S went idle to to b r e a k into held t h e h e a r i n g s were not for the the b o t t l e n e c k . conducted and Carter from the h e a r i n g were scheduled be families^ the i r o e e d u r e had been the papers possible. o v e r by a n d Mas T a n a k u , the hearings interviewers a n d h a d made a r r a n g e m e n t s some c a s e s thoroughly. On S a t u r d a y He h a d l o o k e d in because who w e r e and Mrs. viewed as that of and a v o i d e d g i v i n g were b e i n g as three lack workers, b e i n g p r o c e s s e d and f a m i l i e s fast the t h o s e who This t h e work b e c a u s e was b e h i n d that for especially, Then why w e r e n ' t i n t e r v i e w e d when a n d a s k e d him p o i n t to do. just that i n c r e a s e d by condition this, of day. Caucasians. were reported t h e whole p r o c e s s up. were because, arigiaal segregation hearings were following top know t h e i r felt i n t e r v i e w s were according On Corky Kawasaki t h e u s e of m o r e interpreter, to do. d i d not the 4 August i n t e r v i ewers h a d the Caucasian on S a t u r d a y discontent The f a m i l y 21, the evacuee workers, receptionist, interviews expressed little situation, the day interviewers the 50 i n t e r v i e w s scheduled for a discouraging they had a f e e l i n g new to today, a n d w a n t e d m o r e work discouraged 1942 w e r e b e g u n on S a t u r d a y , is 75 w e r e of C a u c a s i a n four, work which the previous hung around w i t h number interviews »21, still inter- matter It seems properly, Journal-"but August t h i s may b e only a rumor. w o u l d l e a v e on s c h e d u l e , get 3. everything The Council IV. committee an i n t e r e s t i n g was n e v e r p o s e d by the and G a r t e r to on patching, / / of the consequently, organization Segregation l a u n c h e d by elect spe c h , a working According h e r e and tary of Br. had and Koboru were ways the Planning Board," concerning difficult to suggested it. launch being the left say. It may b e so t h a t out." seems t h e P l a n n i n g Boa r d w e r e t h e pe<p l e administration. to deal that to it in favor still that comnunity }ix:ecuti\e Secre- the Planning to Harry, they had with Whose the al- idea Harry ^ayeda administration t h i s was himself " T h e P l a n n i n g B o a r d was committee It that Board. C o n s e q u e n t l y , ffi.fi/ segregation. He s a i d : the Shirai, Accordine c o m m i t t e e was f o r m e d on m a t t e r s block The the handle^ opposed such p o w e r . another The recog- were m e e t i n g w i t h him, Board having "bucked the only suggested should be allowed the City Council, was im- i n v> r o u p the Planning with City s u g g e s t e d when C o v e r l e y was leaders Ichihashi The on t h e p r o j e c t . to deal he had colonist t h e Planning Board matters. Best committee to Harry, the to it restrictions on t h e p r o j e c t . power C o m m i t t e e was for t h o s e who w e r e n o t m a n a g e r s h a d no p o l i t i c a l first trains he hoped politically. r e v i s e d "because administration political In h i s tnat the schedule. requires position The P l a n n i n g B o a r d , nized said 5 c (remittee segregation occupies 1943 JS asked whether rolling according Segregation 24, had allowed wouldn't feel hurt definite that members of is to about si ch a c o m m i t t e e , on even Journal— though t h e r e were the part point August of for the people trouble, o p p o s i t i o n was t i v e s had not as because to be and by p o p u l a r might temporary assent, become in Block 25, when representatives later This petp l e for to be considered did the s h o w up had on focal I n Ward I I d i d not 4 representa- enough b l o c k and l a r g e which were the registration. representatives. r e p r e s e n t a t i v e s by election, it appointed because sending 1942 to such a committee occurred during demonstrated approve of kisei some o p p o s i t i o n »21, selected permanent representatives. The attitude typical of the of t h e Block Manager attitude "The P l a n n i n g of some o f Bard wants to of Block 25 i s the people. show o f f in There were electing representatives, i n Ward I I . tative Mr. Obayashi f r o m .¿slock 4 , of such a p o s i t i o n of the coming not it indications but of as was the difficulty said: Planning in some w a r d s i n d i c a t e d by what elected stated He too much." The S e g r e g a t i o n C o m m i t t e e was l a u n c h e d by Board. probably that represen- he wanted to stay be blamed f o r the c o m m i t t e e hyy t h o s e r e m a i n i n g i n Tule Lake or b y in Shibutani later. know of d i d not The f a c t the existence t h a t Mr. of receive popular The P l a n n i n g take part b e c a u s e he might temporary occurred in Board the the m e e t i n g was 21, c a l l e d for a g e n d a was n o t yet those of Block 4 indicates the Segregation with the did that Committee representative Spanish jt^ijt/ Consul. e x p e c t e d on A u g u s t acts support. invited discussion committee clear to of the C a p t a i n m a r t i n was but h e a p p e a r e d on A u g u s t £ p.m. on s h o r t c o m p l e t e d by notice, 20. and A the the P l a n n i n g Board members. Journal— August B l o c k p e o p l e were n o t i f i e d tions to c u s s what be In questions Takahashi, f o r c e d out Consul. tions to dis- should be Consul, the that center i f Best it would Isseis looked possible s u b m i t t e d by questions for success day of deal government. to their involved* ahead arrived. ask he wculd ite poor health, of h i s issue such a statement t a k e n up w i t h of a r e not very too early, t h e Planning Board c o u l d n ' t Ikeda. the p r e s t i g e came a t 2 and l e f t I k e d a went off (aoi of arrived accomplished at matter. a pale face the The Spanish 5, Mr. kao o s h i t e ) . " spring, the "D a m e d a , The P l a n n i n g B o a r d h a d the its at a thing. "How was a r e a d y when h e bungles accomplish Planning On of B l o c k 25 put tfr. I k e d a and g r e e t e d him w i t h : no g o o d . ) was d o n e by were not l i t t l e was met (No g o o d , representative compiling depended g o i n g home w i t h ^r. an^rsis, t h e ftyjL S p a n i s h D r . K u k i , Mr. was Consul.M ques- The w o r k o f As M r . Yamsaaoto "The P l a n n i n g B o a r d a l w a y s Spanish The on h a n d f o r them as a the questions Consequently, Spanish the b e c a u s e f i l f Cg$> t a i n M a r t i n schedule, came a d a y for in t o jf^fi^Jl^jCji to asking t h e Sp an I) 6h C o n s u l But the t h e m t o do s o . work p r o b a b l y meeting with him. Consul Spanish that seem t o h a v e h o p e d t h a t B<a r d m e m b e r s — t h e Y o s h i d a s , those the impression forward t h e peep l e c o u l d do a g r e a t the Japanese the in the matter repatriation t o make b u t many of a s k e d of 4 ques- sane b l o c k s m e e t i n g s were h e l d O t h e r s who w e r e r e f u s e d a c h a n c e for Consul in the w r i t i n g he would have Consul should hand to who was g i v e n " t h e of had mentioned apply they 1942 t h e b l o c k m a n a g e r , which would be r e l a y e d Planning Board, Mr. that »21, and Ikeda JS Spanish dameda f r . definitely Journal— lost August prestige Spanish. support on The via protest. the visit Isseis A message the the were not the Consul, offered of from the 1943 representative g i v e n any hope except Japanese 24, t o fcse i t Japanese citizens as of 8 of the definite a channel government in America for only h o p e a n d sym- pathy. The ¿xfaitf h e l d on the discussions To increase 2. To recaive other To those decided the baggage investigate leaving A rivalry for has in on allowance case jobs it alone, whole JW/FV^/ of making demands three: t o 300 are not pounds. availfeMke at segregees or e x p r e s s e d by entirely consider This independent ber on to carry the of function itself It is outstanding Ichihashi, Tule L a k e . " At figure Ke h a s the the on t h e of same in the braided given for This Council Nisei», were it v o c a l memaspire s and Plan- power. Committee one n e w s p a p e r lectures the i d e a was committee Segregation by or desires t h e most the the City of t o k e e p XK/ Board. words, bid Isseis time committee both issues representative of and decided segregation Ichihashi, other a definite t t i & t to regardless s t r o n g l y by D r . function s i g n e d by The C o m m i t t e e the Planning In be t h e Planning Board seems. would be committee. on t h e ning Board. its some m e m b e r s f o r t h most The limit it non-segregees. put tfex t m u s t center. Committee, would project. papers another would not but all s p r a n g up b e t w e e n Segregation that of the p o s s i b i l i t y They grants the meantime, centers. 3. Dr. on administration. 1. the Committee, . in Segregation as on J a p a n e s e the is "Emperor culture, Journal— August and has been s u s p e c t e d by ¿ f / / / a "¿"asci**." colonists have intimately he He d o e s n o t least for During his high his action the the people degree that didn't Dr. of immigrant colonists their expense. using a committee the " I t ' s so h a r d a l w a y s want for Dr. At I this t o work w i t h The in the there can't he for advised advice, anything place, to decently. else he a chance is to plane him- s a y any- He a l s o picks superiority a possibility own p r e s t i g e is shows by t a l k about show h i s trait clearly some of these limelight. trouble with for Ichihashi t o be s o n I ' m on t h e it. reveals to be "He n e e d s to to enhance h i s the p e o p l e but About that him. on on a much h i g h e r person t a l k on a n d on w i t h o u t b o r e s me. than on a m o n o l o g u e . Consequently, power t o t h a n k him He l i k e s tries the at of rather his than people. H a r r y Mayeda they over seem t o r e s p e c t first himself another ana more them i s themselves Harry that because meeting, anywhere. they're they It not just working only." is I don't that trust him. he agreed watch him u n l e s s ¿i/ I ' m the meeting with Isseis says: saidi watched; committee when h e You go t o a getting The only rea- t o h a v e me on there." the Spanish C nsul Dr. 4 t h e more he claimed the population. seldom g i v e s with In he c o n s i d e r s once he get*, s t a r t e d and and even b o t h e r conceit. thing serve them, 1942 being to him p e r s o n a l l y Ichihashi and to superiority people registration self, faults of less 8 0 0 p e r s o n s who came characterizes than attitude as s e e m t o h a v e w i e l d e d much p o l i t i c a l which most What administration a n t a g o n i z e d many o f i s known the Project. at His the »21, Ichihashi had Journal— August 24, 1943 10 cornered "Isn't it tion* ing Captain ^ a r t i n with to the inapprijriate evacuee8?" question Board construed to use a technical 'repatriation1 question as a n d members a means I c h i h a s h i * s own b r i l l i a n c e . The t h e committee separate Board and strong to keep enhance h i s use h i s members on in m a i n t a i n i n g retain the goodwill his of r e g i s t r a t i o n m e m b e r s of anything be noncommital is of encourage stood. where h i s administration t o be w i l l i n g Tsuda difficult on t h e to receives to so was later hardly f r o m Ward I I , Harry At be has t h e Colony the and time Throughout the City expected endangered. Council to c o n t i n u e either the However, to people he seem s doing good. investigator, but and might Team a c c u s e d h i m o f who s p e a k s he p r o b a b l y d i s p e l l e d at and has about as good I n many ways h e 1 s m o r e l i k e is a citizen. t r a n s l a t e d Rowa.lt 1 s s p e e c h a n d c r e a t e d many tative of t o ima- a f e w t r o u b l e m a k e r s who a r e t h e p e o p l e no ftisei, that within own p o s i t i o n w i t h becomes tackle a warden than a which were Br. committee registration. He c a n b e J a p a n e s e a s he d o e s E n g l i s h . Isseis is administration. t h e Combat i b b u e H a r r y was n o n c o m m i t a l , whose h e a d he to the the the cause off undoubtedly Committee position doing the Planning Planning Tsuda and T a k a s u e . not or It the answer- on t h e p a r t from the position the Segregation succeeded at of in own p o s i t i o n . a r e Harry Mayeda, of 'expatria- showing insistence Ichihashi. mentioned also of the whole p r o j e c t from Dr. g i n e how h e w o u l d n o t Other itself to represent support and C a p t a i n k a r t i n had d i f f i c u l t y satisfactorily, the question: all. an He mis- misconceptions He expressed himself is the represen- in favor of Journal— certain of August demands the f a c t for that those going he h i m s e l f believes that tion, unintentional. tool is his stand, it committee Administration, the focal there point for s e g r e g a t i o n movement. of about leave. only one The are to the serve instance. in tp i t e Karry administra- as a good Takasue whom H a r r y tration becane of the is tool is a for- believes for of is not for it one m e a n s by w h i c h of it might against and the a sometimes the serve the resistance organized, on the supposed however, and at meetings. block is S e g r e g a t i o n C o m m i t t e e c a n beresistance, enough although to achieve An a g i t a t i o n b e c o m e s unpopular the to a v o i d open worth watching because a few l e a d e r s 3 that t h e p o p u l a t i o n who a r e the people power of t o work w i t h signs organized themselves. formation colonists possibilities especially temporarily. the individuals understands The C o m m i t t e e of the There a r e fourth e x p r e s s e d by suggested resistance resistance come t h e c e n t e r ship he can f r o m Ward V, 11 in Tule Lake. organized The d e m a n d s b e i n g made by is for w a s B e s t who f i r s t representative to projects, disturbing However, 1943 dangerous. While part other remaining while mer P l a n n i n g B o a r d member as is to o t h e r s — I c h i h a s h i , i s not to 24, persons Adminis- conflicts. it can prestige and enticing c a n achieve because leader- Journal— 1. Wednesday, Barber shop J G went sation the b a r b e r s , One was the to for opportunities hard t o get in t o go They the basis of for Mberson open. Don their this barber to 1943 to take you some H a k u . j i n s They'll get violent are willing g t to an o p p o for an hair t o go)£ o u t , t o come too long without only if a a by Don opportunity scarce and w a i t to on the for doing some- wqs: you c a n ' t during wartime. are going out hut be t h e m on tunity were and weee securing for They out One man who h a d peacetimes, o r go of suggestion like t o go seem t o the meantime be this his not to Spokane in resistance. licenses licenses since barbers a chance cut did conver- relocate. willing procedure offered s h o u l d go during the barber they to wait that reply because and of to Barber license. open u p , right weren't regular present sorts a chance t h e WBA t o a person They but and f r o m t h e two themselves. to Spokane The all that taking the suggested else. "It's to W a s h i n g t o n was opportunity thing gathered states, wanted t o go outside, an other through license. license for shop, he a chance, make eager the barber resistance were waiting 25, talk Yesterday of August expect I'll in and get or too bet angry short. paying." there a r e good oppor- tunities. The second r e s i s t a n c e attitude "I'm roing This rous. of not to one going stay feeling JDut or n o t e d was two of t o go toward the b a r b e r s segregation. The was: even if t h e y want me t o . to stay does not are that this feeling I'm just here." of wanting indications seem t o b e is so v i g o - fairly Journal— August »21, 1 9 4 2 4 prevalent. 2. Tad Ikemoto Tad I k e m o t o 1 s w h i l e Tad i s answer to folks scheduled from ' n o ' do--whether and obedient to I don't scheduled 'yes.' t y p e of He was that at parents person, i s not think to stay in Tule Lake, t o l e a v e "because he c h a n g e d to l e a v e h i s with his parents ,! are his a loss or surprising. I'm going t o know what not. decision his Being a recently Tad's to co m e n t s t o m i s s much by quiet stay were; staying, anyway.M One reason for returning 3. is t h a t &e h a s always been thinking of Japan. Ken Y a s u d a Ken's terday "I of v i e w of he at them. think all. that to be All T VRA i s the they are They h a v e no s e t i n my b l o c k get t h e WKA seems are saying enough lumber policy that to pack their Art o r i m i t s u was m a d / b e c a u s e orders Building they and other Yes- to ask for that we're Ken a n s w e r e d boxes t o the going 'yes, yes' those until t o p a c k away h i s c a n t e e n and get and i s e most The people they They things He a l s o went to have away. up trouble don't to othets. and they relocating now. up Japanese t volunteering, which got to get move u n l e s s their he was volunteers from Washington. t o l d h i m t o go afraid of the code. belongings the packing to is or moral t o g i v e him t h e 550 g r a n t , were g e t t i n g t o do they won't t o go a n d l e a v e it's slanted. sympathetic trying want refused slightly t o l d JSi don't people out to this They to say t h e Ad things in, and carton boxes. around on t h e r e m o v a l I'm here." list. But Journal— August he wants to staying. stay Ken en t h e is grounds that a p e r s o n who h a s on v a r i o u s m a t t e r s , and seems his 05, brother 1943 3 in l a w i s c o n s u l t e d Br. Ichihashi bo a g r e e v i t h h i m on various issues. 4. J a n e Yamamoto Jane recently returned Peoria, Illinois, advised five work as nurse* s aides that existed ing for more Japanese in in feels intelligent they kept that largely h a d much c o n t a c t and she Japanese with Jane, t o much p r i o r Japanese a for do waB t o go other the several snobbish were of the in vety her work* with Caucasians and also One o f h e r times friends the in only out shifts. that the She d o e s n o t congregated had exception, from rather associate to be freely keeping and g o i n g and f e e l s Japanese who with somewhere in the dormi- in contact m a i n p r o b l e m s was About differences dormitory, One g i r l seems or 'dumb.' was a n who d i d not evacuation, t o a show, as aides One g i r l , Japanese herself, to to prejudice After t h e same Japanese before, and u n n a t u r a l . l a r g e number doctors same t i m e nurse's themselves. herself. p r e v e n t e d by t o Chicago act friends. activity largely the were put and d u r i n g work h o u r s , could at The in J a p a n e s e worked h a r d and were thought to in between—associating social went t o b r e a k down the s t a y fed home w i t h t h a n go o u t . / / X # her student. associated mostly with Caucasians. I^ion tory a hospital t h e y were p r o m i s e d a d m i t t a n c e girls not Francis toward Japanese. t h a n many o f Japanese as that order some o f whom s h e The where girls months, Jane students, s h e went the hospital several students. where from the S t . thing with to find that she in groups was she has been Japanese relish together. the there idea of Journal-- / Here in the short cess of adjustment ferent situations. should reveal experience of August 25, 1943 of different Comparative a great deal. one g i r l types we f i n d of U i s e i s studies along t h e proin these diflines Journal-1. Thursday, Tanabe Tanabe, ha^taken One of the outstanding a rather reason for that he won't I didn't choice go probably unless he is segregation that h e no the others, they 25, issue. longer Ke h a s made up h i s h a s much mind to a l t h o u g h he had send him to C o l o r a d o . the strategy make my c h o i c e now, if in Block stated Bay saids through entirely philosopher s t a n d on t h e some of yesterday can see latrine in Block 25. along with before "I quiet this a following leave if August 26, 1943 I decided of the Keto. I would to wait lose and 1 feit out that on my s e e what would happen." He even talks t o J S now, d e c i d e d gap between time they ran into the each where formerly two. This other and Mr. t h e r e has morning for Tanabe been the said a first "Good morning." 2. Conversation Right Tanabe after of in a n d how i t JS was Representatives He w o n d e r e d w h e t h e r to r e t u r n to talk. t h e y w e r e on All the of removal There were strategic the message meant it some move on J a p a n ' l talk part to to J a p a n . Mr. that. Ke didn't want the Japanese thought said f r o m t h e J^> ane s e H o u s e sending that mean He by meant didn't k e e p on l i v i n g . started to l e a v e . a l U s h i d a , fifigL I T r / . from Xiska. t h e n a s k e d what Japanese and common: and were p l a n n i n g war, A k a h o s h i , Mr. together thing har e w i t h d r a w n of non-segregees lunch ^ r . and J S got them had one list of that a "message t h e government Kishida it to l o s e hope that they of just hope." wanted war. s u r ^ meant and wanted had a d v i s e d ttist that it they them t o that the they Journal— August s h o u l d make iA e thought the best of their situation that if they t o become w a r d s of t h e government brought gure up t h e in Japan beginning for of fact over (Qkina kao lishida's "Irnin, kaettara in to raise go b a c k care gokutsubushi* calling be the Someone by a p o l i t i c a l relief (i > o b o ) . fi- funds JS the (Kyusaikin) remarked: feeling big, can you?" ne?) sarete te us sure to Japan at o f by they would have (y a k k a i m o n o). to J a p a n immigrants. to c a l l the i r u no n i , iwareru yo." f t i s h i d a * s f e e l i n g f y i j i was return seyo), was: imin*te baka ni they'll 2 R a d i o T^Cokyo, jtyffl h e h a d a n n o u n c e d o shite kaerenai answer 1943 (z e n s h o to Japan, broadcast in iunerican can't down on u s by a cent that a campaign the Japanese "Then you returned 26, us that it present out (They without parasites.) wasn't loyalty time and have and de look I f we go b a c k Japanese government. b e i n g m o r e l o y a l by g o i n g ichimon n a s h i to be He f e l t taking at that care all to taken h e was of h i s own needs. 3 * segregation ...onaay, item is August stating following the English in to hurt the publish, ana which Mr. saia: of the Japanese done not item that a b u u r e u J o was version s e g r e g a t i o n was n o t T h i s was JS abked voluntary A translation day skillfully 23, that the dispatch. not t h e rumor voluntary t h e same section. appeared item appeared The the feelings clinic translation of the Akahoehi ior what the he and others in the block Japanese people t h o u ht of the in the was Isseis. J S h a d a d v i s e d Ople r a n d G a r t e r the best Akahoshi of to had themselves. item, and he Journal— ".Thy w a s n ' t that was the a r t i c l e , we w o u l d n ' t h a v e had any r e a l l y v. r y g o o d . You've nese people. they and that start that it to can t o move a t the stay all. got say if t o be holding told clea i n Oakland I at works English to If t h e y had ail. That trouble at they it's out, the But if t h e n you seem a s we're going express w o u l d go a n d t e l l doesn't myself the you administration for fools Japanese have V/hen I was a n d I know j u s t I understood and were not them t h o s e who do. officials, If idea get t o be c a l l e d The Japa- us who And i f c a n and cannot work. of the Senate t h o u g h we w e r e they to city can't those i y what a n d what of the go. us b e c a u s e choices talk to the l o n g a s we c o u l d . to clear done artiele t h e j; .art of back as used 3 order they'll resisted, stay, 1943 c h o i c e a n d ¿rive t h e m t h e bad for to on things and p r o - a d / m i n i s t r a t i o n . are allowed not that personal It's segregation earlier? t o make carried a h e a d a n d made our resist for be t a l k pbout they went must 26, It* s a masterpiece administration. If printed August enough a block manager, e x a c t l y what they I should do." ur. get Akahoshi his bably feels opinions that through it to is only through JS t h a t the administration, he which can is pro- true. J S asked whether an a r t i c l e that t h o s e who d i d n o t lose the opportunity considered. would be insist, come to ) Mr. Akahoshi harsh i n a n d make h a thought too #//)*/(k a k o k u). that shouldn't All be put their v that that in saying choice e anything their like was n e c e s s a r y segregation was n o t voluntary have to take p l a c e . M r . Kay a h a d S i m i l a r opinion of and t h a t the a r t i c l e . would Ke choices that was to it. w o u l d thought Journal— that it was August was g o o d f o r that it two h a d made "by t h e S e n a t e , A n o t h e r Was that that it it it clear had the that a straight order when they were From the asked standpoint another center riate. The Block M a n a g e r late. the of Perhaps was Kazuko timely. to work. is Her on afraid working eight family parents hours to offered the to she won't it to approp- little has on interesting too the q u e s t i o n now. it was has register, t o V/ashing- 4^200 a m o n t h to they decidedly health, stand since however, the on t h e in a manner in Tule Lake. it. returning improved. only her thought the United S t a t e s , of is g oing of her be able and a aeeire situation she strain of a day. situation do a n y t h i n g a g a i n s t thinking the so. t o move extremely effect almost it t o go a n d make a d i f f e r e n t stay here loyal that She A s a f r a i d it. that u i a not Evidently trol certain s been the hearing because mother is t o do h a d come a What group a l mi o s t She fahe i n s i s t e d and it But Tanabe ICazuko f e e l s ton that said have moved. q u e s t i o n was felt He would Japanese they were w i l l i n g in resistant 4. the t h o s e who a r e w i l l i n g article it yffiyyfy, choice. possible to move. and w o u l d n o t to move, ordered personal everything of h a v i n g 1SBU haa b e e n would have been a n t a g o n i z e d of 4 One s e g r e g a t i o n was that trouble 1942 he m e n t i o n e d . a matter stated to r e l i e v e that that was n o t be done if reasons »21, father was part of suitable useiess to J a p a n , for then that t o conwhich is he would be he asked whether and h e a n s w e r e d for father. to himself, asked whether her her the father and he a n s w e r e d of appeared d é c i s i o n from her He was He was Both wouldn't h e was that he Journal— uidn't August intend to r i g h t was c n s i d e r e d l o y a l w o u l u o n l y go to with Caucasians loyal just to and would have too long, here sort of adjustment 5. in Tule Lake. just ^ - g ler a n d Opier bottleneck in the United to the to get t o seam d i s - seems States. results the the d i s h e s , the l i v i n g would b e c&ivcy&im i f up on s c h e d u l e . train room. was. were b e i n g cleared train Carter left irt erviews y e t , suggested the mechanics so that of for that it. Some of up inade- the He h o p e d s c h e d u l e s were going that they t h o s e who h a v e n o t their an a r t i c l e a n d how t h o s e who d i d n o t informed checked. doing the job, that the soon. thought t h e making some Carter one p e r s o n t o work on asked J S a s k e d what choices make the their The ix e s a i d cone would be p u b l i s h e d up of t o be mate were. s c h e d u l e waa a l r e a d y b e i n g made u p . room w u i d b e JS others the this three-- while only t h i s purpose bottleneck while a package he had quately. two want J S a d v i s e d Kazuko r e c o r d e d and w r i t t e n got t o be a Tanabe1 s p a s t Mr. and found segregation process mid C a r t e r mother associated t h e m h a d b e e n c o n d u c t e d or For her he Carter in the h e a r i n g that hearing. and C a r t e r — d o i n g the There 5 s t a y and he d o e s not in Tule Lake, were c h a t t i n g had such a c o n f l i c t . t o go to purchase fiberson, him that to t o L i b e r son1 s p h c e J S went ladies to if t o be a b l e common among N i s e i s , to mother Elberson, i^lb rson / / leads t o urge her seems, p a r t — h e wants conflict to leave, The f a t h e r it t ® be branded as d i s l o y a l would be 1943 JS* s /q one l u s i o n was the h e a r i n g . stay d i l e m m a on h i s away. 26, train that in for still first ae their considered. o u t l i n i n g how schedules c h o i c e s would not worked, be Journal— able was t o get a good a baa 6. August their with 41000 I "Returning a year i f we will k n e w what (to you rrobpbly feel are ever had education there, b e any loyalty out they won't L:r. to such save to be over After those t h e war remaining in I know b e c a u s e war." is the same. Even Japan b e c a u s e your to Japan, are like want to it that. to be -parents and you have good. There treat They say that stopped." t h e way y o u h a n d l e a funny "Oh to being go'ipg a r t i c l e was v e r y they s t a y * A t h you f o r used last them ¡¡wives). face. that ten aays. their wife to l?isei girls I wouldn't, tenderly, it."' all right, and anyway." probably herefeif.) that's You once." "You d o a n y t h i n g l i k e Ishizuka: are jobs. return girle "It's she misses Japan are was now." because (She wants husbands because to t h e m on t h e h e a d K-ya: t Japanese recent "Yes -"•re. I s h i z u k a makes ^•rs. this there." "That Ishizuka: s h o u l d bop some trouble going the expect th to get "Every over Akahoshi: they're it necessarily o u t , we c a n be s o b a d after not 4175 a month. J£) you Jwr. A k a h o s h i : lv r s . thought think to Japan I f we go be a b l e happened Kaya: won't to not is returning e a r n about a r e going centers Irs. Those t o Japan (y a k k a i m o n o). conditions the seem t o 6 neighbors (c h u s e i). parasites didn't Ople r 1943 either. M r . Kay a : loyal considered. idea,aad Carter i d da Talk choices 26, t h o s e who w e r e in Journal— 7. August 26, 1943 7 Iahizukas The Ishizukas day mr. a r e now on Ishizuka went to the remov/al the When a s k e d w h e r e h e w a n t e d not want another wife over. way told that ¿i© was bhould go. they she c o u l d that. If interview. told hat he Beyond,that rather her they out? She went baby relati first were sian supervisor, the evacuees. nship started Mrs. but in Tift she had The f a c t that t h e y had the Caucasian-Japanese t h e r e were and of She was quite any of Recently only t o 1 3 0 8 a n d was aiid s t a y a m o n t h guarantee her which that the oftly Cauca- other Mrs. to evacuees, t o make Also, working at with work. per- interviewers. helped pleasant. t h e r e were s u f i i c & n t workers t o work as of arrived Tift at that any one handled numbers coming and did not the rest make a n e f f o r t of from " a s h i n g t o n , interviewers, the building, p e r s o n who d i d n o t with the about 7 i n t e r v i e w e r s busy the of put in. on sort. Several supervisor was together relationship sympathetic any to 2508 basis s t a r t e d out they were kept the Kiseis, the couldn't them such a p l e a s a n t s h e was w e l l - r e c e i v e d by sent she let i n 2 5 0 8 most that air his 2508 sonality time, to did and had send because going c o u l d not baby should upset he stay. interviewers time them small he s t a y and h a v e h e r i n t e r v i e w s wexe and that they w e r e n ' t call O'aucab i a n J a p a n e s e when told I s h i z u k a was should she could 8. Mrs. she stay, after to go, Th/other welfare to go a n y w h e r e b e c a u s e he nad a one coming, s e e why social list. kr. the workers. e ^ e a t h was made h e was a gloomy t o put a n d wer himself On t o p o f sort of on a friendly that several Journal— August Caucasian teachers paid for it. and of sane They It preters on h a n d they or into the because made it interviews fact for to they attitude a curious listening c a s e s when that they family in regards situation. i n c r e a s e d f r o m 7 or 8 7 evaucees. For t h e most to themselves kept aloof too. f r a n both Heath, situation. "Come o f interview. But "Mr. how I M ^r. I do business- 19 v e r y 23 infew t h e number t o 11 C a u c a s i a n s teachers The of and kept evacuees let throws some l i g h t on times: eager t o do some I p a s s e d by them h a v e it with because an 1 knew it." know a s h o u l d be a one, it various j u m p e d up whenever heath doesn't thought advise supervisor Y^i/jL kept t e a c h e r s were couldn't couldn't how a. t h i n g the suffi- t h o s e who came knitted. receptionist, s a i u at the Caucasian an/they they the Che interviews, that or the to take a the groups. Hannah M o r i m i t s u , the to the Caucasian and r e a d m a g a z i n e s together, able inter have advice, t o be By A u g u s t had the farinfcl y seem to have to interviewers people' to have d i d not From A u g u s t were being -conducted. about, the whole would have part all c o u l d do they were l i k e j y part 8 to other s e e how t h e y t h e most that t h e work was those wanting the Japanese fact superior to family to g i v e didn't insight them w e l l , all split to h e l p t h e m . / ' T h e that like know what difficult 1943 f o r w o r k , "but w e r e "being t o l e a r n by interviews, information cient was interviewing CcJue i n f o r fact didn't them t r i e d interviews. j o b of 'volunteered* 26, should be thing. He a s k s me a n d so I h a v e to eveiytime suggest to him done." H e a t h a s Jimmy P u k u h a r a w h e t h e r h e was a n interviewer. Journal— Jimmy August s a i d ne w a s . now s i n c e there wasn't compensatory wouldn't overtime. All they're some o f they getting th^ interviews t o work h a r d e r Corky K a w a s a k i , sidered They difficult do n o t their time to sitting sit increased. to the hearing stay allowed is supposed desire to return are nant due actually over III to that t h e outcome t o more the of others the But the fact or their it they They others was slack con- situation. have tc resent wa^te the fact t h e j o b ffljL h a v e indicated a n d on to to r e m a i n or that that find that in America, a o e s not the hearing. List. stay to go, a This board person's his desire determine in Tule Lake to wished they the hearing disloyalty, desire they t h e y would be t h e Kemoval stay It that they t h e y now h a v e of the to h a n d l e thought or A m e r i c a n , signified glad inter- results loyalty to Japan a person wants some who h a v e sane work i f able score. to d e t e r m i n e a o become J a p a n e s e whether the and have i n Group is he send t a k e an listen and JS and hearing t o do s o on t h a t misunderstanding his oi t o i i t . they bo Jimmy a n a some p e o p l e h a v e in Tule Lake, have been p l a c e rather in the office. been At they'd continue of them to discouraged with around inai&nanfr Vhy d o n ' t i n t e r v i e w work b e c a u s e C a u c a s i a n s who a r e n o t K.ibei on Caucasian read magazines some o f that 9. and so much. Lai the are want out times." Father who v o l u n t e e r e d f o r it Look a t take one. at take those paid they t o do a n d the kind. me t h a t before s a i d h e c o u l d go home t o l d me t h a t I ask tell then 9 1943 Jimmy b l e w a n d a n d do i s t h e m home. v i e w and have much ao a r y t h i n g o f teachers. And ^eath 26, or not. in Tule others hile Lake are How s u c h a j&jCjf indig- Journal-- August 26, 1943 misunderstanding came a b o u t f e l l o w who came in for He was jL s t i l l s o often found in a Kibei. could indignant becase his a result be a one «.bout of the it choice as to whether that the panel a n d he g a v e oniy also a n s w e r was 10 y e a r s simple America. gram i s Having loyalty the to oniy he didn't suit to 'yes' could r is real to have a free or to go. At a s k h i m many feels that if he a n s w e r e d intended see questions, he had .«hen h e th any n e e d whether t o do a f t e r know what He f e e l s state their that t he that for freely. t o be Japan. duped b e c a u s e to be They h a a n ' t loyal His d ~ i n n 5 or p e o p l e were going h e was g o i n g t o l»r. been did the war. h e would b e he has choice referred to Japan asked or t o Jaccby. Case t h e most the register, im; r e s & i o n He was 1 0 . Kadowaki One o f ^e nof Then h e w a s a s k e d when h e r e t u r n e d f r o m f r o m now. him d i r e c t l y f He was he would have a n s w e r e d more f u l l y . th-^t h e allowed to stay d i d not answers, aid t o k n o w what were g o i n g to the stubbornness imperfectly. results wanted members a s k e d what h e was u n d e r lacked in Japanese, t o go o u t s i d e a n d d i d n o t registering. He the and w a n t e d people wau a s k e d why h e d i d n o t He was only the they the hearing intend spoke situation. a n s w e r was c h a n g e d f r o m to change thought riot He hearing, He interpreter twenties. speak E n g l i s h wish. an early on h i s strongheadedness, evidently as i l l u s t r a t e d by a K i b e i information in his s u p e r p a t r i o t i s m , the is 10 difficult determination one to o n e ' s of citizenship, country aspect of loyalty the or segregation disloyalty and b e i n g b r o u g h t is up unquestionable, of proXsseis. to consider most Tsseis Journal— August would be f o r c e d t o say t o Japan rather than posed in just is determine to had that that he had The degree to / / / / / £00$ law-abiding blem is want l o o k e d upon in as or disloyalty 'disloyal' ana because through their such q u e s t i o n s U.S." of Japanese?»/ are tie t o Japan "¥ill you t o work to l i v e as, the if an////// is than of "Do y o u used as test right away, he has a of Miseis— are sensible of it is in they American. status, his thing. He to J a p a n , intends his to children to America two whether here?" or the Jssels attachment s h o u l d be he h a s return tb / / Japan to Japan. should also important ¡for "Will remain b e c a u s e most are "Till Stakes?" to be American "because one the are draited?" children y would States?" foolish, he sent attachment There i f you the United for whether his the United doubtful relatives whether in just considered, there, to question, i s s e s s - - a n d m^y "Do y o u w i s h instructions weighed c a r e f u l l y . Even i f your close hand, I s ^ e i s would have in returned other t h e pro- most armed f o r c e s a s k e d how o f t e n h e h a s the Unless the laws should be attach- to Japan as a J a p a n e s e , r a c i a l l Isseis / / / / / / / questioning alien. w o u l d make m o s t so much m o r e J a p a n e s e Issei In of a b i d e by questions seem, Issei the degree the war," the United S t a t e s administrative an as: the U.S. of that More "Do y o u w i s h such would strong. Niseis.) Asking v.s. it loyal were citizenship,is for in to he • 11 .am e r i c a w h i c h w o u l d make h i m a t o win "Are you w i l l i n g live problem, power 1P43 the question attachment t h i s way, their you fight you real 'disloyal,' Ji pan or A m e r i c a loyalty i'f and n o t - d a n g e r o u s automatically be to the U.S., way. the t h e y would p r e f e r to Japan as a p o l i t i c a l ment be thi,t 26, On be attachments that J ournal most not August 26, 1943 Isseis can have political that it does of-the-mill matter in n a t u r e . not help politically. to in that direction and welfare strong or are away of staying here from America nese consulate or s h a r e of roots that if to Japan for Japanese his but firms the ^merica. they to be if future other livelihood de- for t h e n a t i o n 1s reason are swayed the The in America much l e s s immigrants, for it. in i n ..rnerica h a v e a good r e a s o n have not and expected Those whose on c h i l d r e n who to l i v e depended upon economic and stands deal—especially and doing h i s non-existent politically to h i s strong, can be economic. t h o s e whose t h o s e who a r e very parents children is law-abiding however, the the is definitely t h e common run- heart a n d who may a e s i r e is are so n a i v e where h i s a very great attachment p e n d upon being of of w h i c h to ask One a t t a c h m e n t children s t r o n g l y .American, are situation lesei citizens attachment both Isseis the immigrant a r e American This to America, 12 work, are shallow for turning future. This who work f o r is the such a s M i t s u i or true JapaMitsu- bishi. The following upon w h i c h rest of case is the f a t h e r was t h e f a m i l y were T a m o t s u Ka d o w a k i reviewed considered oonsider/ed M j / H M M ïoicotsu head M-24 H Fumiko sister « Charles brother Tsuro mother » Kenjiro brother H Kenzo father flimsy »disloyal,1 grounds while the »loyal.1 F a m i l y number 4413-E Kadowaki, t o show t h e 27155 Recommendation Segregation Ho F-17 Ko M-19 F-45 M-22 M-61 ikes for August 26, 1943 JournalSegregation Hearing 13 Results 8/14/43 C h a r e i e s Kadowaki Bom in B i r g s , ^ever been Didn1t Answer is B u t t e County, 4413-S Calif, Japan. register—due posed He in Age 1 8 to block p r e s s u r e ; very well doean't i s "y e s " k n o w much J a p a n e s e . Recommendation: Removal op- m i s s i o n ibo r e l o c a t e b e i u l e Lc*ke b e c a u s e of If is granted. il this at English— and registering. c a s e comes recommended e has asked f a t h e r 1* l o y a l t y the family it. t o b e an A m e r i c a n R e g r e t t e d not it of excellent Wants list. t h e Bo;, r d of A p p e a l s , remain w i t h a n d no d o u b t Americanized—speaks h e l p w i t h a n y t h i n g he c a n . to father it. t o Q u e s t i o n a 28 before also, that up per- to remain to Japan, ana he in chooses present. I., r t i n 7 . M. (¿underson Kathryn Koski (signed) ( signed) x^enzo H a a o w a k i Came 1 9 0 i . Japan to say Uever better back. than U.S.--very bitter--tried to force family "no." Recommendation: United been Segregation list. "Japan, better than States." Martin P. M. Gu n d e r s e n K a t h r y n Kosfei ( signed) (signed) 8/14/43 T a m o t s u Kodowaki Stockton, Born S 24 4413*£ California. F i n i s h e d at Biggs High. 1938 1938. Journal— Friday, Grandfather and grandmother August 27, 1943 in Jaan. Lidn* t register--"block pressure, Answer to Question #28 is and does not wish V e r y w e l l Am r i c English is to be nized «yes.» He a n d an Japan. responsibility. h e a d of have excellent Removal list. it If is to r e l o c a t e be g r a n t e d . Tule Lake because t o remain is s e p a r a t e d nor t h e Board of A p p e a l s , mission family in rtunily the family type unit broken. of b o y . Hie perfect. a&iuend&tiom before ¡.¿ever with of the father's family at this c a s e comes up recommended He h a s loyalty asked that per- to remain to Japan, a n a he in chooses present. Martin P. Qunderson V M. Kathryn Kosjfki 8/14/43 Tsuro Kadowaki, Age 4 5 , Came h e r e 1 9 1 3 . No p a r e n t s Bid not Would Would in Back 3 months Japan to her register--due obey the -*ant t o 4413-E laws stay 1938. knowledge. to b l o c k of U . S . pressure. and not in U.S. if it Removal list. is hinder the best t h e war effort. interest cf the i amily. Rec c r a m e n d a t i o n : She United States. She f e e l s that of her children that remain h e r e . a better f u t u r e for they them l i e s it in is i s more l o y a l the to the best 6/25/43 int e rview (Interviewer, JS) that U.S. Gunaerson 1£. K a t h r y n the interests She b e l i e v e s Martin Family to Koski Journal-- Attgtìst Tamotsu and K e n j i r o had said that anyone c o u l d do so a s look after that long as them. wanted someone Ony K e n j i r o to leave. The rest to stay to leave. or came i n f o r the have Mr. U u n d e r s o n h a d p r o m i s e d him t h a t he so w i s h e d . was a chance manent. relocate. put on family seems with his They pointed except that the if definitely the present. relocate out father whether relocation, that in Tuie Lake might there that per- were w i l l i n g t o go a m i s t a k e h a d b e e n made list to had been he would have been w i l l i n g felt later become the f a t h e r h i m on t h e r e s i d e n t too superficially. been considered children. insight wa^ Comments father Japan^was too into i n v i e w of the matter mentation than o n e way or and sent on which flimsy— without to be was a d c u b t f u l of loyal probably in the evidence--which the father basis for contested here the pull as at of the is to whether in was consiThe t h e members result. that at the pull toward America. lacking had center all. should have r e q u i r e d is was to a n o t h e r on t h e p a r t accounts case other the hearing would have been b e t t e r the Japanese The p o i n t greater It The b a s i s the hearing panel the for could t o b e a good example where dered disloyal of list he of to situation. the father of stay two h o y s f e l t them. the family interviewer the family in p u t t i n g conducted lack with their t h e removal case This of The along with his Ike that All stay the parents were ponderin, thoughts parents center h a d made up h i s m i n d children 1S43 2 The to a n o t h e r stayed with Tamotsu had to interview. t o go but if decided of the 27, this To best toward decide full case. docu- Journal— Protest August»21,19424 against Block 30. Sister hearing George . know w h e t h e r h a d gone to he had sent a stay. e know. him t o t h e social Cole He had t o l d him, to "no," said that he wanted Questions own c h o i c e that his in s e thought the she d i d . he what t o do. He h i m s e l f Another afraid t&ing that if that v,hen a s k e d w h e t h e r f e n s e was: JS pointed if he stayed of being out he was "Everybody's out that he didn't He to stay. to be bothered leaving felt that her mother him the h e went as of the wanted him to another cen- the fact to work he would be afraid afraid in Tule Lake. that out. the p o s s i b i l i t y deported. if he b o t h e r e d h i m was h e went "/fcen a s k e d he wanted really Consequently, forced ans- she would be f o r c e d out t h e f a m i l y h e h a d t o do what he would b e "no." a f r a i d of h e a d of that h e caa I d matter. that believed Atjf^ in Tula Lake. that Ke secretaxy e v e r y b o d y was g o i n g the that that replied stay plain m o t h e r was p l a c e because if to the counselor. a n s w e r was that by J S r e v e a l e d the fact center it and to changed. he would change h i s to J a p a n , to understand their Office, he c l a i m e d , and h i s h e /f/6jd/ji h a d made allowed ter 49, and wanted results welfare had b e e n a s k e d w h e t h e r He wat, g i v e n was Mother attitude the hearing Security he w o u l d r e t u r n thought sullen Internal fro* "yes" whether a very could have the the hearing wer Age 1 9 . 17. G e o r g e came i n w i t h there results of b e i n g of the h e was drafted. ted, his de- draft." of b e i n g He was w i l l i n g He was w i l l i n g , dra that also, sent b- ck to take to to the t a k e out Japan chance^ / / Journal— August repatriation here, Ke howeuer, thought sent papers he that that really was exchange sent back the d i d not common p e o p l e b a c k on t h e h i m if h e w e r e if ship, after to return himself and it the war. w h e r e he l i v e where he war-ted When t o l d of the chances here in Tule Lake, his have a good chance of wanted to get Cole had notiee getting him out He was his strong would have t o go repeating "I've feeling that been if set h e was shoved around long it ing i d e a of g o i n g the by the fact he indicated that when him. not indignant Then h e going determined fearful to forced to another when to told l e a v e Tule Lake. intention he m i g h t have to. of c e n t e r to it back He was stay in t o go a f t e r that of tc His was his the toy- indicated be promised sullen but all. and up, whether choice, idea he kept going He a s k e d here, spite was b r o u g h t couldn't to order used. it. center Mr. July. the ¿e I ' m not the center that that interview words, t h e way h e p u t i m m e d i a t e l y went in h i s that t o go they up n e x t no f o r c e w o u l ^ e the choice stayed h e was a f r a i d he d i d h a v e a c h o i c e . he would be allowed bec^rre other enough; a n y m o r e , " was that In really that he stated he r e c e i v e d on t h e m a t t e r , stand / X for with if t o do s o . told Japan he would t o do b e f o r e h i s that stay to of h e r e b e c a u s e a b o a r d would be he were if thought He he had with to. taking he Japan. right return anyway. afraid t o l e a v e he would h a v e of out so b a d l y , t o know what c me. that stay he c o u l d n ' t soon he would b e r e p l y was t o l d him t h a t He w a n t e d he would a s If to, to 4 w o u l d n o t "be was a l l h e r e where he wanted could 1943 o n l y way h e c o u l d wan like 27, that and to h e was evidently h e was nontheless Journal— , August 27, 1943 Saving h i s involved, were face with his it seemed. staying .sure h e here, have people from other the i n ferge numbers his protest I'll sent on The f e l l o w seems t a k e my resentment around." doesn't drafted, the Mixed he wants of s i n c e most t o go to exchange h i s friends of t h e m came t o whom h e papers explained to leave the if necessary." office force insecurity in with left as it is to register his hearings. this in and is to another to Japan. to be not t h e y h a v e no t o o p p o s e a n y move want to return friends centers going motivating to be a s e n s e He d o e s n ' t unwilling other. of and a d e s i r e want " I ' m not Silverthorne's primary chance. his also from Sacramento a friend out. r e p a t r i a t i o n t o Mr. of other center, When h e met the r e s u l t s Analysis: to do b e o a u s e other he s a i d : take most P e o p l e /¿f t o go sections i n any that a n d f r i e n d s was t h o s e who w e r e g o i n g h e was incentive predicament, He was is and to Tule Lake. place. to He s a i d c o u l d go a l o n g w i t h . do n o t here neighbors 5 just He's present lot young unwillingness a feeling of to "shove him center also a s he this is for afraid at and he of being present. that of any He Journal— Saturday, August 28, 1943 1» Oda f a m i l y M r . Oda (2507-B) (Tetsu, a s k e d me t o s e e received. Lake. It said Ke f e l t I.) g r e e t e d me the notice that sorry d i d not He h a d p l a n n e d "We'll their His Mr. next answers. t o go (I) th English. manager "rule" for dation to letter a year leaving son in that be- right for one t h e Army the boys to Tule over to change l e a v e about then." t h i s was p o s s i b l e be- had stated tried months on t h e f i r s t of having that and staff" in h i s his §*letter to train to Evidently for Topaz The b l o c k p e o p l e h a v e collected block term of of recommen- recommend h i m speaking the fact is seem p r o - J a p a n broken Also he h a d during in Topaz to h e k n e w how t o t h e e v e n i n g h e was h e a r d Ike. Then he h a d b e e n thnt requested him. recommendation experience. director to George of for to w r i t e the fact the Caucasian In typing a letter through his the project the necessity sian. for t h e s e grounds he English to farm, had I.) an^hree a block manager. broken that in to Japan I can get a s k e d J S t o do s a n e the people On to remain t o afek u s said 25, t he himself The office. is if (Block "cooperated with as spring (17), Kahn h a d d o n e his saids showed him a r e q u e s t Mr. B e s t leve and America. Akahoshi Akahoehi s o n , Kahn to Colorado ed and l a u g h e d and the morning to return T h e y ' r e bound t h i s was 2. Mr. he go o u t wife cause He l a u g his that want t h i n g b e c a u s e he c o u l d n o t here alone. that in he would have a little c a u s e jfy. M r . Oda now. 51, freeing and five that he him from anti-Cauca- cents r person Journal— August a n d h a v e p r e s e n t e d h i m w i t h a wooden Mr. he Akahoshi Caucasians, block, his in 3. a fact wife He is also consider reactionary themselves strong also which he has had w h i c h was higl^y prior to the c&agp. i.isei the to his of has to in desire to cooperative suppressed that in regard. superior to with the his He a n d people seems if he put themselves in G r o u p s e g r e g a t i o n program in of E d d i e ' s discussed father the matter t o do s o . stays here ^e till It ( 2 2 , X*. f r o m l £ i z u n o f a m i l y ) who in this seems parents and b r o t h e r s She apartment said w o n d e r e d what desire and that to them, stay would happen to take Y/hen s h e was close to her help from t h e n . e x t r a money are she d i d n ' t alone have to wanting sisters, left receiving for a n d w i t h whom s h e i s the next s h e was reason to be her been l i v i n g , -^ake. himself rder leaving Tule that was it is for over, he on t h e outside, is bottle- the case. ¿¿ildred* s primary Lake in adjusting t h e war difficulty neck of III interne- recognizes, would have his is/wife from to have b e e n c o n v i n c e d advantage that the release Eddie Lake w i t h JS and instance, wife have starting facilitate ment in 2 t h e b l o c k who a r e f r o m t h e c o u n t r y , ie Eddy S a s a k i ( B l o c k 2 5 , 2 8 , It. ) Edd/ i Snd his to position. 1943 cup. shows a f a i r l y in a leadership 28, to b r i n g up h e r in Tule family. Her w i t h whom s h e h a s afeys still living very scheduled if close, to that children in drafted two l i t t l e she c o u l d be tola stay Tule elsewhere, I d d i e was of her family, When with her have f r i e n d s to her care to s t a y and and children. assured of she would hsve properly, she to Journal— d i d not Sunday, .August 29, 1943 say anything. t h o s e who a r e a s k e d what was that that staying she of dianft idea their of Eddie pect He's t h e words t o be hoping stay that about this a qi i e t of h i s liisei want to that Being not the relish only would happen a f t e r the although he d i d n ' t say fellow, and seems to wife a great deal. seemed to leave up p r o p e r l y , She asked, if d i d not He ne a i d n ' t be d e c i d e d it but res- on t h a t b o t h George and JS had chosen by to they that thing her ground. pretty of thAt unfair Mildred girls. vtry Children to seemea here. to leaving or are stay JS could leaving did could not desiring the JS. packing p a r e n t s was this. out?" want- t h e war would be would consider only but in front trouble where those forced The know, that say a n y t h i n g we b e to l e a v e . so much where c o n t r o l of her them a f t e r them h e r e , she could, wao to "It's spot "Win had argue with JS argued vulnerable s h o u l d not said does in of would h a p p e n she s a i d . she j u s t that said didn't children stay s o many say but seem t o b o t h e r M i l d r e d . Then she She d i d n ' t here, not another answer w i f e would change h e r mind about a n d what difficult. Her his future be brought s h e was in Tule Lake. She which that The her over. she p r o b a b l y point, sort Then anead. was what to for far to stay here ing and moving," t h e war was to J a p a n . reiterated v e r y much. one a r g u m e n t to r e f u t e . and young y e t , returning to he to Japan—something desire t h i n g laddie thought war. find hard think return thoroughly Kisei the s e ma s h e w o u l d do when she would defense This if say staying thought that Journal— 1. August Segregation planning four of /fyifi h a d m a d e . at Carter's invited It was place The a b o v e for t o b r e a k aown t h e of t h e m t h o r o u g h l y why bachelors) By interested twenty they of ana interviews but refused and to g i v e t h o s e who ¿ie was saying found that that t h e r e were about i n and p r o t e s t e d interviews. o r d e r when cases: otherwise as out that so this a s Cau- afternoon. done of a series explain including and wards. come i n f o r corse f o r social interviews The they wanted latter to s t a y one c h o i c e stay to Lake. centers. they would ar- cpuld be (family, only be what to Tule called first to blocks t h o s e who d i d T u l e L a k e a n d a f e w who w o u l d g i v e ter, or leave of Opler suggested. the thinking t h o s e who d i d n o t insisted in t h e r ^ f what according to Jacoby were families choice the that evacuees in f i n d i n g should resistances welfare included agreed a s many h a d c h a r t e d 3 9 0 odd c a s e s r e s i s t a n c e he meant who was, and and a f e w o t h e r s Carter invited resistance. about 4 segre- a m e e t i n g would be H a r r y iiayeda and B r . resistance to resistance s i x a n d a l s o Don i i l b e r s o n met t h e c a u s e of a>r. O p l e r of lunch the problem. C a r t e r was p r i m a r i l y of m e e t i n g s that after resistance a n d J S came a l o n g , a tabulation decided G p l e r was and / / discussing Carter right to discuss rangement. casians, Dai. them d i s c u s s e d 1942 meeting F r i d a y m o r n i n g G p l e r was gat i n with Father »21, here. group in of cen- Opler t w i c e a s much c a s e s who came t h o s e who d i d n o t The w a r d s w e r e f o u n d arranged according to to come i n at fall t h ^ number in of all the for following resistance Journal— August Ward I 86 ward T i l 72 Ward I I 68 »21, 1942 4 Ward I I I < 57 One o f plain Ward V 38 Ward I V 36 Ward VI 33 the ¿hypotheses the Xrf w a r d s 1 was difference in good during that their reactions were a n d most segregation, choice as 'good,* people, seemed, in who h a d to l e a v e w i t h o u t of terms it comprring that this ference tant of number resistance hypothesis in block blocks 'bad* xio c a s e s - - E l k of people a choice in one registration during to stay or to to l e a v e or could account reactions, a great of of the them c o u l d be leave, 11, 41, 43 or m o r e c o u l d n o t be 45, 51, 28, 34, 44, 18, 37, it the 23, dif- identified identified 67 s e med non-resis- registration: 25, the blocks 40 during Lake. ward for and deal go. luie the block was now registration. having been p a r t i c u l a r l y ' b a d 1 16, this T h i s was c h e c k e d up by t h a t fflf. of 31, ten cases 71, for 48 Two C a s e s - - B l k s 3 I k s 17, registration h a d no c h o i c e but want that registration wanted d i d not t o ex- w a r d s was reason during they accounted for One C a s e — B i l e s 1 0 , Those w i t h during reactions. L tabulation most revealed as having been 'bad' there. notes with b/ud* however, others in various xhe m a i n to whether So t h a t by 1 t h o s e who w e r e T h o s e who w e r e amount r a i s e d by J S a n d and "blocks w h i c h probably had first as Journal— • Resistance on the b a s i s to s e g r e g a t i o n , The number tabulated, but there t h e number of b a c h e l o r s It was of a few a g i t a t o r s in that block eistance the center of tence of loudly C a t e came u p , meeting ling but Block against that by that Isseis the people t h e number for is rumors, was a n important reason for (23) but re- had been whieh might But r u l e d out have the the fact that that entirely, t h e r e was where increase the afraid is indication Father point. r e s i s t a n c e was Dr. only of Jacoby felt thj t samp- even. block. One was considered the disloyal JS t h a t the p e o p l e were j u s t of differs have been i n any p a r t i c u l a r one lack tabulation Dai/agreed with that Takahashi from a previous blocks of b e i n g It to have had a there the present i n most exis- t h e r e was a f a m i l y supposed Another earlier l e a v i n g Tule Lake. of instance, r e s i s t a n c e were d i s c u s s e d . were was influence in Block 10, t h e y were T h e r e h a s b e e n no s u d d e n fact agitators r e s i s t a n c e on a b l o c k b a s i s . development for in a existence lear i n g , resistance. taken little—the causes resisting of t h e c a s e was d i s c u s s e d , resistance tabulation Other 71, between the increase in h i s b l o c k ana where ca;. e of organized that to note i n which recorded to a that r e s i s t a n c e was no o r g a n i z e d interesting could explained e a c h b l o c k was s p r e a d by a f e w i n d i v i d u a l s . which definitely The p o s s i b i l i t y disturbing an o r g a n i z e d talked in t h e number / / a/block several said "be 4 to l e a v e without considered plausible in i i a r y „^ayeda is and somewhat. b e e n p l a n t e d or asked of b a c h e l o r s sufficiently cases c o u l d not s e e m e d t o b e no c o r r e l a t i o n ftfoLjk/j&f/fljLfk/ikjL considered. however, oi' t h e number b e i n g choice alone. block. August 29» 1943 this basic tired of Journal— August»21,19424 m a v i n g a n d "being t h i s was and the basic stated that p o i n t e d out in other Dr. such desiring to to it not resist that that part program i ext was preferably resistant the to of the to be situation evacuee those to lack program wanted t o know interviewers. to convince they go. Carter a s much does evacuee centered around a group. First the basic Tule Lake an fears f r e e l y was skillful together was able sort. of in acquainted seemed Carter this a group leave. / It the using some o f net JS c o u l d not of resist.- nt gotten moving. t h e s e p e o p l e who wer the discussion that about They th; t importance from leaving evacuees, resistant was b e s t counteract discussed group to use draft. plausible When a c o u n s e l i n g a p r o g r a m of to cope w i t h persons it it the actually being evacuees would be the important venting of only of aged c o u p l e s , suggested, would be a d v i s a b l e in tional without He insecurity p e o p l e do of involved. f a m i l i e s was as p o s s i b l e program thinking segregation. reasons. openly. as b a c h e l o r s , individuals resisting The that that disagreed, to give to bother considered to J&pan, seem t o r e a l i z e help JS economic and i n t i m a t e a c q u a i n t a n c e w i t h J S remarked those want o t h e r s were return individual whether didn't cats/gories the actual planning thought and f e a r people wanted t h e s e two r e a s o n s that t e r m s of for they announce insight that seem t o h a v e feeling with a n d on t h e o u t s i d e thought lie does/i not help resistance. t h e two m a i n o n e s a s "being because usually reason for F a t h e r Dai t h e r e were more f u n d a m e n t a l centers Jacoby reasons shoved around. to try recognized group could b e reached for educapre- suggested, counselors, to coax that this, only since the part e Journal— August they planned merely T h e r e was also to a feeling p e r s u a s i o n would have group. JS pointed s h o u l d not suaded that on t h e p a r t very out be h o u n u e d to l e a v e for the send a p e r s o n a l this group of own g o o d o n l y , ones had their or g o i n g . Harry kayeda p o i n t e d make a l o t of arrivals etc. it differences if f r o m Tttle Lake w e l l 'Th^Ian known that that with drew the the in that other terms greatest t h o s e who w o u l d n o t of it centers in for that idea could be put into threat could not be used while of such a the people were h e r e , s t a r t e d as be a i?umor, but a n d when announced as a d e f i n i t e counseling still of the h a d ehc i c e more r e a s o n f o r At the upler mittee end of suggested to meet of not centers again felt for the m a j o r i t y had group or them j o b s , It or was t o make four trains Jerome, effect, that the it but n the was majority might left it be could rucogn.zau that s h o u l d b e don® w h i l e else they i would have all they the leaving. the meeting, that Carter policy. resistant three and not to interviews unfortunately, that The l a s t fact staying e n t h u s i a s m was i-inidoka, felt the treated of g i v i n g come per- vsat> g o i n g left this individuals either scheduled for was f e l t resistant should be would b e for Jerome. the in view of choice out that (loyal* end, but 6 from ¿ e s t . the group effect the b i t t e r their 'disloyal» of little that to letter 1943 th-s in which i&ated group be kept o n e or two as weeks. almost two hours, a p l a n n i n g com- t Journal— August 2» J o h n M a t s o m o t o John's (2519-jfc* N . / attitude testified is to being probably disloyal segregation hearing not get a ohanoe register, put on panel t h e removal which with his than. family at Ke c me t o he c o u l d not view sheet came staying, a family unit h e was leave and had with his His to be John himself not enti h e was sequently, felt that side. were, Some If looked loyal return to stay to Japan with interviewing supervisor. He the case unless h i s JS talked for told inter- t o him and c a l m e d him t h e r e was a g o o d doctor's parents that He h a d parents chance with h i s be a b l e returned the fact and c o u l d not t h e money, support heart, however, from p l e u r i s y , time. t o make a l i v i n g as they and Con- a n d two c h i l d r e n , to J a p a n , and b e c a u s e h e was to work f u l l wife of stay. a n d h a d a weak recovering o r d e r s not to e x c i t e d was aged (67) to him for r e t u r n with statements who w e r e g o i n g becoming Ke was the here welfare the and on social parents, had to c l i n g to did t o l e a v e he became after. he would not he had to Keath, f a t h e r was i f he l e f t his considered t i e d up w i t h h i s ely h e a l t h y . under John because he c o u l d be c o n s i d e r e d a p a r t closely them. When s i c k and he wanted a s s u r i n g him t h a t J o h n ' s main argument that States. notice discuss through. down a l i t t l e s b y his the 6 o f many who h a v e t o l d C o l e , who was that and a l s o w a n t e d 2 5 0 8 a n d met M r . that h e was He h a d When h e r e c e i v e d h i s center of list. typical b e c a u s e h e was i n t e r v i e w e d him, frightened. John to 1943 30) to United had his 29, on t h e he out- said they and J S showed that them. h e made t o H e a t h Journal— he August d i d not had want you too long. can't But toe d i s l o y a l . said at told that it scheduled being I can't the 7 time. t o l d Cole He to Mr. and the t o keep the family himself disloyal family. latter just t o see the and that too long went the to return see B e s t , after loyal t h e TT.S. can be here. that and Freed up b e c a u s e he was the possibility to to John making Cole's of the John became frigh- and p o i n t e d stated that return that to would John in comments w e r e , here for the war. at all. take his He family Cole apologized. that he was, that property, to anything it out he had a after h e h a d no again. stated staying better unfortunately who a d v i s e d a r e h e a r i n g . that was with t o have return to Japan because which the matter see C o l e . It testified part it center. to told JS that But i n t e r v i e w sheet the war, sure than in another t o b u i l d a n y t h i n g up t o Japan "You stay intend second testimony to to intended he had he d i d n ' t intented to to center. and Mrs. s a i d about here down w r o n g . t o w h i c h he that say agreed with i m m e d i a t e l y went said stay h e r e , JS had d i s c u s s e d together v e r y t h i n g was p a t John to leave, H o t h i n g was i n t e r v i e w was h a n d l e d He afakea to s t a y b e c a u s e he c o u i a toe con^idetfed a parent's t e n e d and want do a n y g o o d t o to leave. Heath, I wanted I'm going i n t e r v i e w in another he d i d not o f fjifk h i s property that loyal could." wouldn't able I ' v e "been s t a y toy toeing l o y a l , day h e h a d h i s than him that I c o n s i d e r me d i s l o y a l . if I that The n e x t of disloyal 1943 saidt "Hell, he to toe c o n s i d e r e d 29, the Cole They t o o k down interded to effect, no according duration return longer to if T ohn: you Journal— have it John's he August down l i k e only could this, concern seems sure h a t e t o s e e y o u do t o hi v e b e e n t o make stay here i n Tule Lake with his The same e v e n i n g JS t o l d John that he d i d n ' t out a testimony of that by making a r r a n g e m e n t s t o be sort this fact the mony scrapped. moto and h i s parents that family should be they were t o a d d a memo t o in Tule Lake, ike e x p l a i n e d "You c a n want the a n d not stayed department date the J S made to have second that testi- J o h n Matsu- to stay with one f a m i l y the Legal t o make parents. ting allowed really J o h n h a d p r o b a b l y made stay to have his unit. Then h e Aid Department second it." that have welfare the following perhjijas 8 fanily. with h i s J S w r o t e up a memo s t because was g o i n g am social unit w i t h John f o r recorded, sure because he could have with c o n s i d e r e d one f a m i l y an appointment to A but 29» 1 9 4 3 testimony b e c a u s e &e was stating in order disloyal. As to Johns t tell t o go o u t , what's and going to happen. then y o u ' l l have You may some d a y some b a s i s on w h i c h to appeal." John, however, saw i t if s u c h a memo was sent, He r e i t e r a t e d what Cole here if he him that sent He d i d n o t thought t h e Legal be put it his if trust Aid Department. that Ke was of the that with his if sure sort. Social JS completely In afraid second t e s t i m o n y might one u n i t would be b e s t down p l a i n l y way. had s a i d — h e ' d be stay family seem t o that another in a t e s t i m o n y he c o u l d considered his in staying JS assured Department parent's family. on t h i s score, a memo w e r e n o t disloyal scrapped. Welfare other words, h e was of be that sent and to h e now w a n t e d t o make sure to that Journal-he could out August 29, 1943 n stay. also intend everything and d i d not rents he d i d not Tule Lake sidered TfT hat John wanted thought ¿¿iseis, loyalty or at least center, it visor^, and at first split a n d o n e of i n 2508. He n e v e r got friendly appointed. just Kis they had rebuilt folks lost what Japan with h i s there. For these to appal as well that to pa- reasons leave h e was con- manner. Isseis were in them, Mr. Heath, means a year He lasted a deTo in a even got t h e w o r k was b e i n g reloe a n d Kay T i f t , both smoothly. talk her After from Washington supervisor on, and to the workers days, and a in couple Thompson (?) was of h e r , and even name w a s . In t h e mean- on by H a n n a h M o r i m i t s u , o f whom t r i e d The to see i n t e r v i e w i n g was Jimmy H a m a g u c h i , (Caucasian). super- order. was g^ i n g a glimpse carried good was made a a Mrs. k n o w what 2508 a s workers several supervisor, d i d not fairly t o k n o w what where he c o u l d d o n e by Tom S a k i y a m a , over in c h a r g e at several t h e work f l o w e d it to a c i t i z e n s h i p . started J S never receptionist, To little. put things to a p o i n t recptionist Charles to t o go 2508 seemed d a y s ago a n o t h e r that could e v e r want was first interviews arrived, time over disloyalty? in was the they to r e t u r n means v e r y Kay T i f t of that to a c o u n t r y , Mrs. never it farm because many who h a v e l i v e d liisorganization the intend disloyal. relationship cation the start s e e how h e w o u l d and is finite to feel a n d make a f r e s h he d i d n ' t make a l i v i n g b y h i m s e l f . t o go b a c k they had l o s t . a added t h a t b e c a u s e he c o u l d n ' t didn't 3. e 9 the to it largely Corky K a w a s a k i , and Journal— August 29, 1943 whenever was the a change only i n p r o c e d u r e was m a d e , o n e who was were not told properly, tests the hearing of t o know w h a t t o the Social received case. He d i d n o t able Internal for s u c h odd c a s e s , and b e i n g whether he that was began that testimonies to. One or be sent fare up there. where be made. office taken It was n o t procidares the clearly in Saturday Korimitsu, trouble straggling to get all t h e day in. Saturday to had herself, take learned later that morning in w r i t i n g . the the replied social copies that t o keep these wel- back channel. were to general Kay T i f t some being should right and put scheduled c a r e of no o n e had t h e m down to be c l o s e d . and had such w o r d came and sent then four were in t h e o f f i c e was into information offices receptionist, afternoon anu better o f f i c e * ke recorded, sheets, the afternoon of cases, were c l a r i f i e d form. Saturday open p a r t till itemized the that not When J S a s k e d to h i s two d a y s protests interview person such a Aid and s h o u l d b e h a n d l e d by their seemed Tom S a k i y a m a was office. they would be d i r e c t e d t h e r e w e r e no for They interviewers, t o 1804, If t o o many p r o t e s t one were b e i n g t a k e n in his b a c k f r o m t h e - ^ e g a l Aid D e p a r t m e n t stormed with that that right sent he would h a v e b e e n s h o u l d s e n d t h e f e l l o w up all no one on how t o h a n d l e J S c a l l e d up L e g a l on f i l e Then p r o - JS i n t e r v i e w e d him, it. kept workers all. t o come i n , instance, and supervisor The t o l d at Security instructions know, from Silverthorne it The any to cope with cases or w e r e n o t Welfare Dep.rtment. having handling notified properly. results to do. the 10 H nnah interviews the few that office came Journal— 4. Types At of 2508 families to interviews split t h o s e who h a v e g o n e member of words, cases are being families in Tule Lake. There a r e is on w i t h members handled at 2508. The interviews completed the Split following families Protest desiring to One or m o r e m e m b e r s desiring to leave .against desiring One p o i n t who went by through and l a r g e , are willing are Niseis. results the leave by every other II are t a b u l a t e d by 24 and on r e m o v a l list//.....6 family 3 and one this of their girl) hearing is and probably tabulation segregation Practically because i n Group and of a group... hearing (This regardless to required the family segregation out is In 28 w e r e 6tay as a split to l e a v e brought split obtained; to (¿¿-21, M-20 ( s t e p s o n ) Protest on A u g u s t even though of H however, list. the family segregation stay some c a s e s , t h e removal results desiring against By 1943 segregation hearing, of being J S and handled. w h e r e o n e or member through the family 29, 2508 families i s meant stay at August that h e a r i n g want their family, status. considered to Very a n d when no o n e p r o t e s t s they have been is rare) 1 those stay, f e w pe<p l e t h e y do segregation disloyal. they hearing Journal- Monday, August 30, 1943 1 . Gen I c h i r o f f a k a m u r a ( 2 5 1 6 - C D , hakamura is t h e head 50, of a f a m i l y G e n i c h i r o ^akamura I) of seven 50 Shizuko Motohiro 23 Kazuko 18 Kimiko 15 Tsuneo 11 Kiroshi Fred In h i s younger in foreign h e made a t o move is said tuition for superior the is He aesire was Later, Manager step within at to one for his in the p r o j e c t , at h e was a b o u t the the block quiet by g i v i n g them himself in for that do insfact. time. first strong t o oppose co-op m a t t e r s opposition of still When t h e C o - o p l o v e - to handle policy He meetings, to it. s e l e c t e d him as P l a n n i n g Board in keeping with h i s farm- whom h e f e e l s pride (?) even pay shown a f a i r l y and r e c o g n i t i o n . on years a living the present he has time dollars and c o n s i d e r s takes deal this children. the block, teacher to eight t o eke out and h e was a s k e d of time he c o u l d not at a go At seven or how t b c o n d u c t and he c e a s e d h i s also last school about started, however, the people expert attention first the block, a an coming for he u s e d thousands the country rural w o r k i n g ¿fiji a s Since ment is lost urban background, know v e r y m u c h , tance. He to Japanese in his to also For that takes pride not but transaction. It that t r a d e w i t h J a p a n i n San F r a n c i s c o . he has had the d a y s i*akamura r e c o u n t s some m o n e y , single ing. 7 keeping The it. within Block Representative, troublemakers responsibilities. Journal— During registration he kept or August 30 f 1943 the quiet and d i d not other, a policy niijg iioaru itself. as h e was a body, into as a Planning office. to Within The block, friends frcm the block, he c o n s i d e r s most of the l^iock. whereas m o s ^ f His the families intends sons for at that ber of to this stay time probably Isseis their they t o reveal ary staying some o f and in h i s you've JSs you're got "You be here. I suppose for that of but by to rea- he said num- the seem t o b e not saying staying, that arguments wanting seem to segregation. follows: it all right t w i c e when y o u h a v e believe list, What Most t^o, BudJ-hists. of a g r e a t . K a k a m u r a 1s resistance close revealed his accounted for as t h e ttock, associate with JS. case, somewhat rural are Christians, He reasons for in closest the matter leaving. popular. the t h e removal the basic think don't in than thinking to remain choice too the block are on as ard. seem t o h a v e any children the <lected subsequently been His an a r g u m e n t reveals cannot alone, to in t i r e d of Nakamura a r g u e d "If this. is Plan« resigned the people in Tule Lake. who d e s i r e are merely leave, here recently f a m i l y v/ho h a v e and of within S v i u e n t l y Hakamura* s f a m i l y he a n d was better O t h e r w i s e he does not within the who was from t h e himself the majority accounts for i s Uishida. t i m e by Kiehida9 s position t h e n g i v e n Mr. however, he has not who c o m p o s e probably the o n e way representatives t h e B o a r d of D i r e c t o r s that people, at either s u c c e e d e d by M r . L i s h i d a , He was the fact the representative himself maintained When Co-op r e p r e s e n t a t i v e elected commit Board 2 you w o n ' t t o go a large out, but family." be allowed to Journal— stay in H: M and August»21,19424 another 0f course. eventually budget was don1 t think only it that the read: out that's you can near " T h o s e who jobs just v/hat the war, b e e one lit a r e you g o i n g of won it own way for If about "If at not you get only a n d do effective t o get The and you for remaining correct (will the be when re- Japanese t o do when y o u ' r e start caught ccxning b a c k her and to win s h e d o e s win For own way m o r e to lease the indemnitites like this. easily, even she thing we'li it living. i f y o u go s o , fcu t p e r s o n a l l y be Then and l a n d a n d make a disadvantage." think She's the war, one in a p l a c e a don't the war. I out?" think can." "The y o u want able is VSome p e o p l e go out ¿i: here "Can't JS: out. the was relocate" things. b e i n g put all be d i f f i c u l t you to sure already. won't that of translation soldiers to be their N: c l o s e up f o u r The t h e Japanese can hare JSs out, another." going indemnities So s t a y i n g forced t o 44 m i l l i o n , The WRA m e a n s and a l o t is can have h e r / paid to going scarce?" "Japan about or emphasize t e n camps on t h e b u e g e t refuse to Tule L a k e . ) "But after to t o mean b e i n g run future. by o n e m e a n s J3: going They're bound in turned They*re hound r e d u c e d f r o m 70 m i l l i o n six. camps do y o u ? H center, it." t h i n g about seasonal staying here is work and e a r n (¿JO a n s w e r to this. that some p o c k e t This is one of you can't money when t h e most arguments.) Japan to l i v e in loses the war, the United then States, the Japanese won't myway. Even if be Hiseis Journal— August have c i t i z e n s h i p , away. I'll b e i n g out way. a citizenship, in Japanese are y o u go o u t , J3: "They have don't t o you. But wherever they now. in 'loyalty* class in being know how I c a n e x p l a i n it's natural that I have get When t o know t h e stop anyone, s a i d was in Japan, over any- You job? I won't thfct what accepted use against. you ought distinction no to Japan, a decent to J a p a n ) . learn 4 e v e n when y o u discriminated t h a t way, you'll There's s h i p p e d back crying t o do { b e l o y a l have d i f f i c u l t y and right." iiiseis there." that class people will distinction have difficulty go." you're sent back to Japan, will someone take car you/" ht "Of c "The is urse, t h e war this, t h e American that the Hirabayaehi Ca^e he that still He must he hopes that to has to remain tie t h i n k about is yourself." government is that Supreme Court said that a bit to J a p a n . still /mother of Low t h e y want Isn't to / r e t u r n a n d do f a r m i n g , canized. reasons. 2£any p e o p l e who want ~hows care The effort. they wish ana to take times. military Analysis that with c o n t r a d i c t o r y many here for help you have trouble connection with is be 1943 t a k e n away f r o m t h e m r i g h t and can you g e t treated after it in college, thing "If all he right when y o u a r e right JS: that, because we'll T h e r e ' u s e H: yftf/i w i l l a s s u r e you a degree of it 30, we w e r e p u t us their t o go o u t in Tule Lake to state Uakamura d o e s not to America. in America his in contradictory?" stay tie^ in after children, future, One tie t h e war who a r e too. say Put Amerithe e Journal-still for August wishes tnis he i s he does not decent His In have living first for by and f e e l s the is a can self a against for power. solution factors recognition, is he is being in argue with others 2. Kaya (2519-1), little By what with that he He he f e e l s is thinking he considering without to said, ^ r . Kaya against racial saM; this rea- whites that him- fantasy, troubles Besides these strong need the p a s t , e v e n now. to feels one and o t h e r This attain better knowing v e r y much* with Mr. Japanese into the war. than he cannot identify himself 49, is the only c h a r a c t e r i z e d by a in wanting which he runs economic in that t h e dominant He w a n t s victory nature. c a s e b e c a u s e he Japan him. in Japan for for and which drive seems leadership others, to I.) a n d M r s . Kay a . a m u s e d by what M r . N a k a m u r a was indignation felt. subject J a p a n e s e by frustrated positions, JS ate center, a n d making/i ©notional in h i s of h i s t o g i v e him added energy Yesterday out which has b e e n d e n i e d him i n constantly Seiichi tie His around Japan and J a p a n e s e emotional mth y o u n g of a Relationship true and f e e l s with Japan's a s he weaves largely strong correct/situation of g o i n g the second p l a c e , especially strongly, the reasons family f o r c e d out a Japanese In discrimination rather are as 5 family. the ^aperor, changing. This his Japan to of b e i n g 1943 The p r i m a r y he has a l a r g e th96onfidence t h i n k of son. that place, loyalty race, in Tule Lake. afraid t i e s with the owes stay seem t o h e di i l d r e n , a to 30, revealed that M r . Kaya was a trying to tell he d i d not discrimination that JS. feel s o many the Isseis Journal— August»21,19424 "i-iakaiiurc.-san shouldn't Any n a t i o n is And a s discrimination, I for likely have f i n d someone Otherwise, you to change talking X t r y not t o be h a t e d f o r thinking Iiiipinos, its it feel I I Mexicans. usually and c o n ' t shut say. I up a n d d o n ^ t discrimination find a seat, and fault for knowing into going that the I particular t h e n can* t g e t 3. *agis can't they will According i s s u e of scheduled if btand. want ' ¿hat the are Negroes, about being yourself.» I ride on If I a next should be s i t s by me^/f, don't college It's ihy sitting I to the courses later, street- sitting t o be e x p e c t e d . their they aon't do, t h e y go field be where J a p a n e s e are recognized employed." 25} t o Mary A i d i i y a m a , whether t o go or to leave, he off. I don't J a p a n e s e go jobs them thing. hen and t a k i n g find Whenever same t h i n g insist attention. jobs—it's agricultural (Blk tell thems a to all. indignant all. comes a n d , ana where at just to college they I tell say I don't a n d some H a k u j i n p a y h i m ai$r at because Jhy s h o u l d you b e some K a k u j i n women. by m y s e l f time. Lon f t y o u l o o k down upon about? don' t f e e l car to they from time it d i s o r i f f l i n a t e d a g a i n s t , when y o u d o t h e Then .America. too much, say a n y t h i n g , things he d i d about policy I don't about to the s a i d what dies. but to the stay. their twenties, want plans t o go o u t to look at cause some o f in t o go o u t At 'no, that split no' is over robably string teens the even and in They h a d made but time on late farm. some l a n d , answered l e a v e el s u r a a c e . ^ / X / j i / insists their ana are The f a m i l y the f a t h e r The b o y s , t h e boys ¥agis w e r e h e l d up beand c o u l d not the father was get willing Journal— t o go the August»21,19424 out, but eiaest son, pointing,out another center, but to argue with / ¿ / . h i e and d i s a d v a n t a g e s I.)/ t o go wants to that take even could get i.ary look adequate youngest out however, her insists been accused of position care want that parents. going to in. is is but that hus- t o go t o work h e r s e l f , of h e r child. to stay because that her willing of should Japan wins, the < nly perhaps She h a s want scheduled enticing she f e e l s should center, as She feels the in- but reason she ought several on g o i n g f i f c j L t o a n o t h e r family,Jijifil which and of JS has that he that he staying. t i m e b e c a u s e he does not her, ( 3 1 , Wf father, t o / work was b e c a u s e h e h o p e d s o s « t h i n g by after give Mary she has he can r e c e i v e t o go feels, here* if h e a r d y X j ^ M him say h i m s e l f d i d n * t want doesn't t o another stay husband does not demnities Sadayoshi (2519-F) she can her on s t a y i n g . the f a t h e r t o make a l i v i n g , long as that tried ( 2 3 , X. ) w a n t s band, ( 45, out has insists the advantages Kishiyama Mary now h e t o be ^ to and center at brother to 57he this t i e d down w i t h she has been put s h e go o u t stay brothers. remain h e r e . the youngest to Mary his has t o go o u t with i n a n awkward the younger brother did, too.